N (, A "^ % 4" - ^'b .-i'' .\ Oo. .<^ '^y^. c.Q- >. '^ ' o <• ^ .\ ^1' vOo. History of Georgia By Robert Preston Brooks, Ph. D. Associate Professor of Georgia History, University of Georgia ATKINSON, MENTZER & COMPANY BOSTON NEW YORK CHICAGO ATLANTA DALLAS Copyrisht Wl,> Hy R. P. BROOKS. a^"^ {d'^ ©CI.A35741t> PREFACE In the preparation of this text I have followed the newer ten- dencies in historial writing. Many uninteresting details which serve only to confuse the pupil have been omitted. Among such details are the minor events of the successive gubernatorial admin- istrations, the careers of men of slight importance, and descrip- tions of military campaigns. The space, gained by these omissions I have given to matters of fundamental importance in the social and economic development of the state. The economic motive behind the settlement of North Georgia ; the development of the cotton industry; the growth and effects of slavery; the history- of education and of transportation, are some of the matters treated in detail. Other new features are the unusual amount of space given to the post-bellum period ; the large number of maps ; and the appendix on the civil government of Georgia. I have kept constantly in view the necessity of writing a usable book. The manuscript was read and criticised by a number of public school and normal school teachers of the state, and I am led to hope from their opinions that a text constructed along the above lines will prove acceptable to teachers and pupils. Where the book is used for very young people, I suggest the omission of Chapters V, XI, XIV, XIX, XXV. I am under deep and lasting obligations to the many friends who placed at my disposal historical materials and photographs, and especially to those who read the manuscript in whole or In part. I wish to acknowledge particularly the assistance of Pro- iii fessor Willis H. Bocock, whose friendly criticisms and suggestions made while reading the proof greatly improved the form and content of the volume. I am also glad of the opportunity to express my appreciation of the many courtesies extended me by Mr. W. J. DeRenne, who has rendered a valuable public service in collecting the sources of our state history. R. P. Brooks. University of Georgia, Athens, Ga. October, 191 3. IV CONTENTS Page Preface iii Maps and Illustrations xii List of Important Dates vx Chapter I. Georgia: The Land: The Importance of Geography 5 Area and Boundaries 6 The Mountains of North Georgia 6 The Piedmont Plateau 9 The Fall Line 9 The Coastal Plain 11 The Seacoast 12 Climate 12 II. The Aborigines of Georgia: The Name ''Indian" 15 Southeastern Indians 15 Indian Characteristics 17 The Indian Village 19 Political Arrangements 19 Tribal Wars 21 Religion 21 Agriculture 22 Manufacturing 24 Customs 2S Indian Mounds 27 Use of Tobacco 28 III. The English Background of Georgia History: Eighteenth Century England 33 Prisons for Debt 36 Hi.rsh Criminal Laws 37 Scheme to Found a New Colony 38 James Edward Oglethorpe 39 V IV. Beginnings of the Colony, 1733-1740: Analysis of the Charter 42 Sailing of the First Emigrants 47 Town of Savannah Begun 48 Oglethorpe Treats with the Indians 48 Visit of Indian Chiefs to England 49 Coming of the Salzburgers 49 Coming of the Moravians 52 The Scots Settle on the Altamaha River 53 Frederica, Augusta and other villages , 53 Parliamentary Appropriations 54 Government of the Colony 54 V. The Critical Period, 1733-1752: Unfavorable Physical Conditions 57 Land Tenure Laws 58 Prohibition of Slavery and of Rum 59 Repeal of the Land Law 63 Indented Servants 64 Introduction of Slavery 66 VI. The Spanish War, 17 40- 17 42: The War Caused by Boundary Dispute 69 Financial, Economic and Religious Difficulties. 70 Oglethorpe Invades Florida 72 The Spaniards Invade Georgia 75 Battle of Bloody Marsh 77 Importance of the War 79 VTI. Georgia Becomes a Royal Province, 1754: Why the Trustees Resigned 81 Types of Colonial Governments 81 The New Government of Georgia 83 The Three Royal Governors 85 Extension of the Boundary to the St. Mary's River 87 VIII. Material Development, 17 54- 1776: Revival of the Colony after 1750 90 Small Farms Superseded by Plantations 92 vi Social Classes 95 Laws to Control Slaves 95 Agriculture and Other Industries 97 Commerce 98 IX. The Revolution, iyy4-i'jy8: Nature of the Revolution loi Colonial Trade lOi Question of Taxation 102 Stamp Act, 1765 103 Division in Sentiment in Georgia 105 First Revolutionary Meeting in Georgia 107 Fall of Royalist Government 112 Hall, Gwinnett and AValton Sign the Declara- tion of Independence 113 X. The Revolution, lyyS-iySj: Campaigns in South Georgia 115 Fall of Savannah 115 British Conquest of North Georgia 118 French and American Attack on Savannah. . . 120 Turning of the Tide 122 Political Affairs During the War 123 XI. Georgia Enters the Federal Union, lySj-ijSg: The Articles of Confederation 130 The Federal Constitution 132 State Constitution of 1789 137 State Constitution of 1798 137 XII. Settlement of Middle and Xorth Georgia. 17S2- iSoO: Immigration of the \ irginians and Carolin- ians 141 Wilkes County Settled 141 The Head Rights System of Land Distrihution 141 Franklin and Washington Counties 142 Societ> in the Early Nineteenth Century 146 vii XIII. The Yazoo Land Fraud, 1795-1814: Claims of Spain, the United States and Georgia to West Florida 152 First Yazoo Sale i53 Sale of 1795 154 Rescinding Act of 1796 158 Cession of Western Lands to the United States 160 The Yazoo Fraud in Congress 161 The Supreme Court Settles the Controversy. . 163 XIV. Political Parties, 1787- 1 840: Federalists and Antifederalists 165 Jefferson and the Democratic-Republicans... 166 Why the Federalists Lost their Georgia Fol- lowing 167 Era of Personal Politics 168 Troup and Clarke Parties 171 Influence of Protective Tariffs on Parties. ... 173 Nullification 1 74 Whig and Democratic Parties 178 XV. Pushing Back the Frontier: Creek Indians, i733~ 1827: Home of the Creeks 181 Cessions under Colonial and State Governments 182 The Creek War 183 Cessions of 1802 and 1804 184 Lottery System of Land Distribution, 1803. . . 185 Boundary Extended to the Flint River 188 Governor Troup and the Final Cession 191 XVI. Georgia and the Cherokee Nation, 1783-1838: Home of the Cherokees 195 Why Cherokee Land was not in Demand Be- fore 1820 196 Semi-Civilization of the Cherokees in Nine- teenth Century 196 Extension of the Jurisdiction of Georgia Laws over Cherokee Land 199 Vlll Case of the Cherokee Nation versus the State of Georgia I99 Worcester versus the State of Georgia 200 Governor Lumpkin and the Final Cession. . . . 202 XVII. Origin of the Black Belt in Georgia: Definition of the Term ''Black Belt" 208 Importance of the Invention of the Cotton Gin . 208 Revival of Slavery 213 White Counties Become Black 214 Migration of the Poorer Whites 217 Migration of the Planters with their Slaves. 218 Growth of the Cotton Industry in Georgia. 219 XVIII. Slavery: Economic and Social Aspects: The Treatment of Slaves 221 Number of Slaveholding and Non-slaveholding Families 226 The Cotton Plantation 226 Slow Growth of Manufactures 228 Low Character of Slave Labor 230 Effect of Slavery on the Soil 231 Effect of Slavery on Society 232 XIX. Slavery: Political History: The Civil War Caused by the Struggle over the Extension of Slavery into the West 237 Why Extension was a Necessity to the South. 238 Missouri Compromise; Admission of Texas. . . 238 The Compromise of 1850 241 Compromise of 1850 in Georgia 243 Howell Cobb Elected Governor 244 Kansas-Nebraska Bill 245 Dred Scott Decision 245 Rise of the Republican Party 247 XX. Secession, 1861 : Rift in the Democratic Party 250 Why Secession Followed Lincoln's Election. . 251 History of Secession Movements 252 Northern Opinion as to Secession Changes. . . . 253 ix Election of i860 in Georgia 255 Alexander H. Stephens and the Union Cause. 256 Secession Convention, 1861 260 Thomas R. R. Cobb and Secession 263 The Montgomery Convention 264 Georgians in the Montgomery Convention. . . . 264 XXI. A Half Century of Progress, 1810-1860: Growth of Population 267 Agricultural Development 267 Backward State of Manufacturing 268 Travel and Transportation Before the Era of Railroads 270 History of Early Railroads in Georgia 273 Educational History: the Academy; Old Field Schools; Poor School Fund; Manual Labor Schools; Higher Education 277 Election of 1857: Joseph E. Brown, Governor. 283 XXn. Georgia in the War Between the States: General Plan of the War 286 Invasion Reaches Georgia 288 Burning of Atlanta 290 Sherman's March to the Sea 289 Georgia's Contribution to the Confederacy. . . 297 XXIII. Reconstruction, 1865-1868: The Presidential Reconstruction, 1865 300 Legislation to Restrain Freedmen . 302 The Freedmen's Bureau 304. Congress Overthrows the President's Arrange- ments 305 Fourteenth Amendment Rejected 306 Bullock Elected Governor : Fourteenth Amend- ment Adopted 307 XXIV. Reconstruction, 1868-1871: Organization of a Conservative Party 309 Expulsion of Negro Legislators 312 Third Reconstruction of Georgia: Fifteenth Amendment Adopted 3^4 X The Campaign of 1870 315 Character of the Reconstruction Government. 316 Failure of Reconstruction 317 XXV. The Social and Economic Revolution: Southern Conditions in 1865 321 Passing of the Old Social Order 322 Rise of the Middle Class 322 Establishment of Public School System 323 Fall of Plantation System 324 Laws to Control Freedmen 325 The Ku Klux Klan 326 The New Systems of Farming 327 Negro Landownership 33 1 XXVI. Recovery and Development Since i8yo: Growth of Population 336 Increase of Wealth 339 Farms and Farm Products 339 Growth of Manufactures 342 The Public School System 343 The University System 349 Reform of the Convict Lease System, 1908. . . 354 The Good Roads Movement 356 The Prohibition Law, 1907 357 Disfranchisement Amendment, 1908 358 Recent Political History 360 XXVII. Some Great Georgians: Crawford Williamson Long 366 Sidney Lanier 368 George Foster Pierce 369 Henry Woodfin Grady 370 Joel Chandler Harris 373 Logan Edwin Bleckley 374 Appendix 377 I. Civil Government of Georgia. 11. List of Governors. III. List of Counties, with dates of organization and popu- lation in 1910. IV. Constitution of Georgia. xi MAPS Page 1. Physical Map of Georgia 7 2. Original Homes of the Cherokees and Creeks i6 3. Territory in Dispute Between England, France and Spain, 1732 43 4. Charter Boundaries of Georgia 46 5. Early Settlements in Georgia, 1 733-1 752 50 6. Coast of Georgia and Florida: Spanish War 73 7. Georgia in 1 763 88 8. Georgia in 1783: Yazoo Land Sales 155 9. Indian Land Cessions in Georgia 195 10. The Black Belt of Georgia, i860 209 11. The Black Belt of Georgia, 1910 210 12. Territorial Expansion of the United States to i860. . . . 239 13. Secession Vote in Georgia 261 14. Georgia Railroads in i860 276 15. Sherman's March through Georgia 292 16. Population Movements in Georgia, 1900-1910 338 XII ILLUSTRATIONS Oglethorpe Monument, Savannah Frontispiece Water Falls in North Georgia 8 Shipping at Savannah lO Palmetto Grove in South Georgia 13 Indian Implements 23 Indian Mounds 28 Indian Pipes 29 James Edward Oglethorpe 40 A Rice Plantation 94 Noble Wymberley Jones. . . . .' 109 Lyman Hall 112 Button Gwinnett 125 James Jackson 159 William Harris Crawford 169 John McPherson Berrien 175 George Michael Troup 190 Wilson Lumpkin 203 Whitney's Cotton Gin 211 Old Time Spinning Wheel 219 Howell Cobb 242 Alexander Hamilton Stephens 257 Robert Toombs 259 Early Railroad Train 274 Mercer University 280 Emory College 282 Joseph Emerson Brown 284 xiii 27- Sherman Marching through Georgia 295 28. Herschel Vespasian Johnson 301 29. Benjamin Harvey Hill 310 30. Ku Klux Costumes 326 31. Group of Farmers at Agricultural College 333 32. Agricultural College Educational Train 340 33. Experimental Plots at Agricultural College 341 34. Cotton Mill 342 35. Consolidated Schools 345 36. University of Georgia, Chapel Building . 350 37. University of Georgia, Academic Building 351 38. Georgia School of Technology 353 39. An Improved Road in Georgia 357 XIV IMPORTANT DATES IN GEORGIA HISTORY 1539. Hernando de Soto traverses Georgia. 1732. Charter granted by King George II. Oglethorpe sails from England with the first emigrants. 1733. Oglethorpe reaches Georgia, February 12th. Savannah begun. 1734. Salzburgers come. 1735. Augusta begun. 1736. Scots settle at Darien. Frederica marked out. 1739- Oglethorpe invades Florida. 1742. Spaniards invade Georgia. Battle of Bloody Marsh. 1743. Oglethorpe's final departure from the colony. 1752. Resignation of the Trustees. Coming of the Dorchester Colony. 1754. Georgia becomes a Crown Colony. 1763. Close of French and Indian War. Georgia's boundary extended to the St. Mary's River. 1776. Lyman Hall, Button Gwinnett and George Walton sign the Declaration of Independence. 1777. First state constitution. 1778. Georgia adopts Articles of Confederation. British take Savannah. 1779. French and Americans attack Savannah. 1782. British withdraw from Georgia. 1783. Close of Revolution. Georgia claims lands westward to the Mississippi River. 1 783- 1 800. Coming of the Virginians and Carolinians to Mid- dle Georgia. XV ■ 1784- Charter of the University of Georgia. 1788. Georgia adopts the Federal Constitution. 1789. Second state constitution. 1793- Cotton gin Invented in Georgia. 1 794- 1 796. Yazoo Frauds. 1795. Louisville made the capital. 1798. Third state constitution. 1 801. Opening of University of Georgia. 1802. Georgia cedes western lands to United States. 1803. MllledgevIUe laid out and designated as the capital. Establishment of the land lottery. 1807. First meeting of legislature In MllledgevIUe. 1 8 19. First steamship to cross the Atlantic sails from Savannah. 1826. Creek Indians leave Georgia. 1833. Georgia Railroad and Banking Company chartered. Central of Georgia Railroad chartered. 1836. Western and Atlantic Railroad authorized to be con- structed as a state-owned road. Emory College chartered. Wesleyan Female College chartered. 1837. Mercer University chartered. 1838. Cherokees expelled from Georgia. 1842. Crawford W. Long discovers anaesthesia. 1845. Supreme Court established. 1 85 1. Howell Cobb elected Governor on platform advocating Clay's Compromise. 1 86 1. Georgia secedes from the Union. Fourth state constitution. 1864. Sherman destroys Atlanta. Sherman's March to the Sea. 1865. President Johnson reconstructs Georgia. Thirteenth Amendment adopted. Fifth state constitution. 1867. Congress overthrows the Johnson government. 1868. Fourteenth Amendment to the Federal . Constitution adopted. Sixth state constitution. XVI Final reconstruction of Georgia. Fifteenth amendment adopted. Public school system put in operation. Seventh state constitution. Atlanta becomes the capital. State Railroad Commission established. Rise of Populist Party. Cotton States and International Exposition. Local self-taxation for schools authorized. Court of Appeals established. Agricultural high schools established. State College of Agriculture established. Legislature passes a state-wide prohibition law. Disfranchisement of negroes. Abolition of the convict lease system. Beginning of good roads movement. Constitutional amendment making high schools a part of the state school system. xvii Oglethorpe Monument at Savannah. History of Georgia CHAPTER I GEORGIA: THE LAND The Importance of Geography The history of a country properly begins with a study of its geography, for without such a study it is impossible to understand the life of the people. The ways in which Georgians make their living, their political opinions and social and educational condi- tions are largely the results of the situation and climate of the state. An illustration of the powerful influence of physical conditions is afforded by the early experience of our people on the seacoast. The founders of the colony prohibited the holding of slaves, because it was intended that the settlers should produce wine and silk, and in these light employ- ments slaves would not be needed. But climatic con- ditions were such that these industries did not suc- ceed. Georgians turned their attention to rice grow- ing, and as the coast was swampy and malarious, it seemed necessary to allow the introduction of slaves. The whole subsequent history of Georgia was affected 5 6 History of Georgia by this change from a free labor system to the use of slaves. Instances could be mutiplied, but this illus- tration is sufficient to show the student how neces- sary it is to know something of the climate and soils of a state, if he would rightly understand her history. Area and Boundaries With an area of 59,475 square miles, Georgia ranks twentieth in size among the states of the Union. No other state east of the Mississippi has so great an area. Georgia is one of the South Atlantic States, lying between 30° 31' 39'' and 35° North latitude, the length of the state being about 320 miles; and 81° and 85° 53' 38'' longitude, west from Greenwich, the greatest width of the state being about 254 miles. Georgia was once very much larger than she now is, but, because of circumstances later to be mentioned, part of her territory was lost. The present bound- aries are North Carolina and Tennessee on the north ; the Savannah River and the Ocean on the east; Florida on the south; the Chattahoochee River and Alabama on the west. The Mountains of North Georgia If the entire state could be viewed from some out- side point, say from a ship off Tybee, it would present the appearance of a vast inclined plane, with the highest points on the North Carolina-Tennessee border and the lowest at the seaboard. The northern part of the state is crossed by the Appalachian sys- History of Georgia LEGEND Mountains Piedmont Plateau Coastal Plain FALL LINE Physical Map of Georgia. Reprod. from Merrill, F. A., "Geography of the Soils of Georgia." tern of mountains, extending from New Hampshire to Alabama. In Virginia, North Carolina and Georgia, the Appalachians appear as two chains with a wide valley between. The western chain is known as the Alleghenies. This chain crosses the extreme 8 History of Georgia northwestern corner of Georgia. The mountains are broad-topped and are not of great height, Lookout Mountain being the highest, about 2400 feet above sea level. The coal mines of Georgia are here located, in Dade and Walker Counties. The Appa- lachian Valley separates the Alleghenies from the Blue Ridge, which covers northeast Georgia. The Waterfall in North Georgia. Blue Ridge mountains, with their irregular, sharp- pointed peaks attain a much greater elevation than the Alleghenies. The highest peaks are Sitting Bull, 5,046 feet above sea level, and Enota, 4,798 feet. Both of these peaks are in Towns County. The Blue Ridge section is noted for its beautiful valleys, swift streams and picturesque waterfalls. History of Georgia 9 The Piedmont Plateau Below the mountains comes a rolling, broken and hilly country known as the Piedmont Plateau. The word "Piedmont" means foothills. The mountains do not cease abruptly, but gradually shelve off as one approaches Middle Georgia. The Piedmont section extends to a line connecting Augusta and Columbus, and passing through Macon. The elevation varies from 1500 feet above sea level to 300 feet at the southern limit of the region. The soil is a mixture of sandy land and red clay. It is naturally very fer- tile, but on account of the rolling character of the country, it easily washes away. This part of Georgia is more densely settled than any other section; it has been the most important agricultural region; and is now leading the other sections in the development of manufacturing. The Fall Line The dominance or Piedmont Georgia in manufac- turing is due to her abundant supply of water power. The presence of mountains in North Georgia and the shelving nature of the land south of the mountains determine the course of the rivers. Practically all the important streams of the state rise in the moun- tains or foothills and flow southward, seeking the Gulf of Mexico or the Ocean. So long as the rivers are running between mountain ridges or tumbling among the foothills, the streams are rapid and full of 10 History of Georgia shoals and waterfalls. The power generated by the swiftly flowing streams is used to turn the machinery of cotton mills and other manufacturing plants. The rivers change their character, however, when they leave the Piedmont and break into the Coastal Plain. Shipping Lumber at Savannah. The line connecting the points on the several rivers at which they leave the Piedmont is known as the Fall Line. Below these points the streams are broad and deep, and flow slowly. Augusta, Milledgeville, Ma- con and Columbus are on the fall line. These towns History of Georgia 11 were built where they are, not by accident, but by design. Going northward from the Atlantic or the Gulf, boats find smooth water to these towns, but beyond, travel and transportation must leave the rivers, because the rapids and falls make them im- passable. Large towns, therefore, grew up at the limit of navigation. From them wagon roads radi- ated into the surrounding country; the farmers hauled their cotton and other products to the towns; flatboats, and, later, steamboats were used to convey the products to the ports and to carry supplies up- stream to the market towns. The Coastal Plain Below the Piedmont section lies the great coastal plain of Georgia, covering some 35,000 square miles, more than half the total area of the state. While this region is on the whole level and fiat, it is not by any means so monotonous as many have supposed. The elevation varies from 100 to 350 feet above sea level, though hills occur as high as 700 feet. There is a wide variety of soils, but for the most part it is sandy with a clay foundation. This section was for- merly covered with pine forests, though they are now rapidly disappearing, the soil being appropriated to agriculture. The forests are the basis of the lum- ber and turpentine industries of the State. A char- acteristic feature of the plain is the wiregrass which, carpets the earth in south central and southeast Geor- 12 History of Georgia gia. The Coastal Plain was until recently sparsely populated, but now that improved methods of tillage and the use of commercial fertilizers are making the cultivation of the sandy soils profitable, a large popu- lation is being attracted, and South Georgia prom- ises to rival the Piedmont as an agricultural region. The Seacoast Georgia has a sea frontage of 126 miles. The coast is not mountainous and rugged as is the case in New England, but is almost flat. The indentations of the coast at the mouths of the rivers and the sounds be- tween the mainland and the islands that fringe the coast provide excellent harbors. Parts of the coast are swampy and malarious. The climate has not proved attractive to white people and the population is, therefore, small, except in Chatham County, con- taining the city of Savannah.^ Rice production was formerly the leading agricultural interest of the sea- board counties, but periodical freshets and storms, labor troubles, and the competition of the rice fields of the West, have crippled the industry. Climate Owing to the great length of the State and the for- tunate physiographic variations, eight of the nine cli- mate belts of the United States are represented in ^ Now that modern science has taught us how to conquer malaria, we may expect ere long a large white population on the coast. History of Georgia 13 Georgia, though it is only at the top of the mountains that the lowest of these temperature conditions occurs. The mean annual temperature of the Pied- mont Plateau is between 60° and 65° Fahrenheit, while below the fall line the mean annual tempera- ture is between 65° and 70°. For the whole State, the mean July temperature is 81.8°. With this unusual Palmetto Grove on the Georgia Coast. climate, varying from the temperate to the sub- tropical, and with soils of w^idely different character- istics, it is possible to produce in Georgia almost any sort of crop. Her agricultural interests are, there- fore, quite varied, ranging from apples in the moun- tains to cotton and corn in the middle regions and sugar and rice in the southern section. Only three 14 History of Georgia States in the Union surpass Georgia in the total value of agricultural products. Additional Reading: Merrill, F. R., Geography of the Soils of Georgia. Published by the Georgia Club of the State Normal School, Athens, Ga. Copies may be had on application. CHAPTER II THE ABORIGINES OF GEORGIA The Name "Indian" The voyages which led to the discovery of America were undertaken for the purpose of finding a western route to the East Indies, and when the islands now known as the West Indies were reached, the dis- coverers thought they had succeeded in their endeavor. The native people, or aborigines, were, therefore, called ''Indians," and the name, oddly enough, became permanently attached to them. These natives were scattered over the entire continent of North America, from the frozen North to Florida and from the Atlantic to the Pacific. The total popu- lation was very small, not more than half a million for the whole continent north of Mexico. East of the Mississippi it has been estimated that there were about 200,000 Indians at the time of the discovery of the New World. There are at the present time about 400,000 Indians in North America. The Southeastern Indians There were four principal nations or tribes of Indians in the southeastern part of what is now the 15 16 History of Georgia Original Lands of Cherokees and Creeks. History of Georgia 17 United States, namely, the Cherokees, Creeks, Chickasaws and Choctaws. Of these only the Cherokees and Creeks played an important part in the history of Georgia. The Cherokees were the most civilized and one of the most powerful of all the American Indian nations. Their original terri- tories embraced all of the states of Kentucky and Tennessee, the western parts of West Virginia, Virginia, North Carolina and South Carolina, and the northern portions of Georgia and Alabama. Their southern boundary in Georgia was approxi- mately a line drawn from Elberton to Cedartown. The Creeks or Muscogees were a confederacy of numerous tribes, occupying all of Georgia south of the Cherokees, central and eastern Alabama and Florida. In Georgia they were known as Lower Creeks; in Alabama, Upper Creeks, while in Florida they were called Seminoles. In later chapters the story of the gradual acquisition of the Indian lands by Georgia will be told. We are at present con- cerned only with the life and customs of the natives in their primitive condition. Indian Characteristics The Indians were of a dark reddish color, strong, well proportioned, active, nimble footed, and capable of enduring great physical suffering. Their hair was lank, dark and coarse, and their eyes small, sharp and black. The accounts of white men who lived 18 History of Georgia among them as traders and government agents differ as to their mental traits. By some they are pictured as cunning, deceitful, revengeful and dishonest; others thought them honest, hospitable to strangers, kind hearted and industrious. The last Royal Governor of Georgia, Sir James Wright, wrote of the Creeks as ^'a most base treacherous people and in whom you can have no confidence or dependence." The Cherokees he had found "much more civilized and better disposed." Indian Dress General Oglethorpe, the founder of Georgia, left a description of the Indian mode of dress, of which the following is an abridgment. The men wo^e a sort of trunks, covering the middle portion of t^e body, the women a short skirt, reaching to the knees. In winter both sexes wore a mantle about two yards square, ''which they wrap round their bodies as the Romans did their toga." These mantles were some- times of European make, bought from traders; some- times of native dressed skins. To complete the cos- tume, the Indians wore sandals or moccasins made of leather. The aborigines were skillful in prepar- ing skins for clothing and also knew how to w^eave blankets and rugs. They had a curious habit of painting their bodies. Oglethorpe mentions seeing Indians painted red, TdIuc, yellow, and black. Various History of Georgia 19 sorts of ornaments were worn, such as feathers in the hair, necklaces of beads, and earrings. The Indian Village The Indians usually lived in village communities. Their houses were often framed structures and were sometimes whitewashed inside and out. In addition to his dwelling, each head of a family had a corn house, a poultry house and a hot house. The hot house was built of heavy timber and was plastered with mud. There were no openings, except a low door. When this was closed, the structure was prac- tically air tight and cold proof. Here the Indians slept in winter, lying around a fire which was kept constantly burning. How they endured the smoke is a mystery. Near the center of the village was a public square, in which were located the ^^Great House" and the "Council House." The former consisted of four single-storied houses enclosing a court. Public meet- ings, feasts and dances occurred there. The Council House was erected at a corner of the square. It was conical in shape and from twenty-five to thirty feet in diameter. This building was the meeting place of the "mico" and his council. Political Arrangements The small number of Indians belonging to any one tribe or nation and the fact that their settlements 20 History of Georgia were scattered over a wide territory made any sort of government over the whole tribe impossible, even if the Indians had felt the need of organized govern- ment. While the aborigines scattered over many thousands of square miles might call themselves Cherokees or Creeks, there was only a very slight bond between the villages. Each village was in fact a little nation in itself. If the Creeks desired to go to war, each town decided independently whether or not it would take the war path. There were at the close of the eighteenth century thirty-eight Creek towns. A government agent who lived among them at that time wrote that they were never unanimously in favor of any war, so that the nation might be at war with the Cherokees or Chickasaws and half of the villages send no warriors. The government of each village was vested in a chief, known as the mico, a war chief, and a council. The mico was chosen by the warriors of the village from a certain clan or family, and held his office for life. His opinion was of great weight in determining the policy of the town. Society was, however, democratic. Outside the council room, the mico was in no way set apart from his fellow citizens. The war-chief owed his position to his renown in battle. He led in all mili- tary excursions and presided over the council in the absence of the mico. The council was composed of the older warriors of the village. History of Georgia 21 Tribal Wars The various tribes of Indians were seldom at peace with one another for long periods. Quarrels over hunting grounds appear to have been a fruit- ful cause of war. The Indian method of warfare was quite unlike that of civilized peoples. There was no formal declaration of war, no marching forth in battle array. Usually a small party of from twenty to forty would steal cautiously upon the enemy and attack them by night or lie in ambush for returning hunting parties. They often resorted to tricks to conceal their presence and to disguise their numbers, such as wearing the hoofs of buffaloes or marching in single file, each man stepping in the track made by the warrior just ahead. When lying in ambush, they would communicate with one another by imitating the calls of wild birds or beasts. The slain in battle were always scalped and often dismembered. A warrior's standing in his tribe depended on the num- ber of scalps he took. Captives were treated with the utmost cruelty, burning at the stake being the usual form of torture. In this sport the women and children joined with great zest. The victim stoically bore the torment, pride preventing his showing any sign of suffering. Religion The Indians believed in the immortality of the soul and in future rewards or punishments for their 22 History of Georgia lives on earth. They worshipped the sun as the giver of life, light and heat. They were very super- stitious, believing in evil spirits, which they were accustomed to appease by incantations and charms of one sort and another. The Southern Indians did not worship idols. The High-Priest was an im- portant personage in each village. He was believed to hold personal communion with the invisible spirits and was regarded as a mediator between them and the red men. The warrior's idea of heaven was a limitless hunting ground, and he was invariably buried with bow, arrows and spear, that he might not be without weapons in the other world. Agriculture The earliest account we have of the Southern Indians is found in the notes kept by one of de Soto's companions, in 1539, during his noted exploration of this region.^ At that time the Georgia Indians were living in villages, had wooden houses, and while depending principally on the chase for food, had ^ Hernando de Soto, the Spanish explorer, came to Florida in 1539- Marching northward, the adventurer led his army into what is now Georgia. The Spaniards crossed the Ocmulgee, Oconee and Ogeechee Rivers and reached the bank of the Savan- nah. They followed the Savannah as far north as the moun- tains, where they turned sharply to the west. Skirting the moun- tains, de Soto's party reached the Coosa River and followed its valley into Alabama. The explorers finally reached the Mis- sissippi River in 1541. De Soto died shortly afterward and was buried in the great river. History of Georgia 23 Indian Implements. I Piecing Instrument Made of a Deer's Tibia. 2 and 4 Arrow Heads. 3 Mortar for Crushing Corn. 5 Axe. Reproduced by permission from Jones, C. C, "Antiquities of the Southern Indians" (Appleton). 24 History of Georgia passed the nomadic stage and looked to agriculture for part of their sustenance. DeSoto's diarist records that the savages grew corn, beans and pumpkins, preserved plums by drying them, made oil from bear's fat and from walnuts, and, of course, used the native fruits, such as the strawberry. Most of the accounts of Indian life were written in the eighteenth century. Agriculture had by that time become the principal means of livelihood of the Cherokees and Creeks, game having become scarce. Their towns were commonly located on streams, because there the land was most fertile. Each dwelling had a garden, in which were planted peas, beans and early ripening- corn. The larger fields were devoted exclusively to corn production. When the proper season arrived, certain days were set apart for planting, and all the able-bodied inhabitants of the town turned out and worked on the cooperative plan. In some towns the women did all this work; in others, the men assisted. The implement in ordinary use was a hoe, consisting of a fish bone or flat stone fixed upon a wooden handle. Though the planting and cultivating were done cooperatively, hedges divided the fields into indi- ^^dual holdings and each warrior gathered the crop from his own part of the field. Manufacturing The activity of English and French traders in sup- plying the Indians with cloth, beads, paint and a History of Georgia 25 wide variety of articles of iron, tended to check the progress of the natives in manufacturing. They were, however, skillful workers in stone. No steel or iron implements were used until the white man came, but in spite of this hindrance the Indians made beautiful arrowheads, spearheads, stone pipes, trumpets and mortars for grinding corn. Another accomplishment was the art of making earthenware of many designs. Articles for personal adornment were made from shells. Spinning and weaving, the dressing of skins and the art of dyeing were in com- mon use among Cherokees and Creeks. Marriage Customs The marriage customs of the aborigines varied from tribe to tribe. Among the Creeks the matches were always made by the female relatives of the inter- ested persons. Having decided on a girl, the young buck sent his aunts, cousins and sisters to consult with the women of the girl's family. If the overtures met with favor, the prospective bridegroom built a cabin, planted and gathered a crop, went on the hunt and brought back meat, and then received the maiden into his hut. There was nothing sacred about the marriage, it was not sanctioned by a priest, and could be dissolved at the desire of either the man or the woman. If a separation occurred, the children became the property of the mother. The Cherokees 26 History of Georgia practiced monogamy, but the Creeks had as many wives as they could support. Funeral Customs The Creeks buried their dead in a pit under the cabin of the deceased. The pit was about four feet square, and the body was placed in a sitting posi- tion. Gun, tomahawk and pipe were deposited with the corpse. Immediately on the death of a Cherokee his body was washed, anointed and placed in front of his lodge. After a period of mourning, the body was carried three times around the hut, and then buried in a pit under the floor. The Choctaws placed the dead body on a scaffold eighteen or twenty feet above the ground. When only the skeleton remained, it was taken down and placed in a bone house. After a considerable number of skeletons had accumulated, a funeral ceremony was performed and the bones interred together. Cremation was practiced among some tribes. Most of the tribes seem to have buried with the dead warrior his weapons and other highly prized possessions, and vessels containing food. This practice indicates the Indians' belief in a future existence. The food was intended to sustain him during the passage from this world to the next. Feasts The Cherokees and Creeks celebrated many feasts, of which the most important was the busk, or harvest History of Georgia 27 feast. The feast was preceded by a period of purifi- cation. Houses and streets were thoroughly cleansed, and a great bonfire made of garbage, old clothes, cooking utensils and whatever food happened to be on hand. A three days' fast was decreed, and all criminals who had fled from justice might return and be forgiven, except murderers. On the morning of the first day after the period of fasting the high priest made a new fire by rubbing sticks together, new corn was brought from the fields and the feast began. Indian Mounds or Tumuli The valleys, river banks and islands of the coast of Georgia were once dotted with hundreds of Indian mounds. Numbers of them still stand, the only monuments we have of the former inhabitants of our land. These mounds vary in size from the large one in Bartow County, which is sixty-five feet high and two hundred and twenty-five feet in diameter at the top, to the small individual burial mound. Archaeologists believe that the mounds were erected by a people who lived in Georgia before the Indians came. There are several reasons for this opinion. The larger mounds were erected with the expendi- ture of enormous amounts of labor, more than the Indians of those days could possibly have supplied, as their number was too small. Students of the subject think that prior to the coming of the Indians a much 28 History of Georgia more numerous race lived in our country. Another reason for this view is that the Indians had no idea when or why the tumuli were built. They used the mounds as towers to watch for expected enemies, and as burial grounds, and sometimes stockaded them for service as forts; but the form of some of the great mounds suggests that they were intended as Indian Mound on Tumlin Plantation, Bartow County. Photograph furnislied by Mr. Robert Milan, Cartersville, Ga. temples of worship, and it may be that some ancient people, of whom we have no knowledge, used the tumuli for the performance of religious rites. Still another point in favor of this view as to the ancient character of the mounds is that observers of the Indians agree that they were not idolatrous, whereas in the tumuli many idols have been found. Use of Tobacco The Indians originated the practice of tobacco smoking. Europeans at first thought tobacco was Indian Pipes. Reprod. from Jones, C. C, "Antiquities of the Southern Indians." 30 nUtory of Georgia used for medicinal purposes, being unable to under- stand how pleasure could be derived from a practice which nauseated the white men who attempted it. The savages are said to have regarded tobacco as the special gift of the Great Spirit for their enjoy- ment. The pipe was the constant companion of the red man, his great solace and comfort. The habit of smoking seems to have been wellnigh universal among them. In the manufacture of pipes the Indians were very skillful. Thousands of them have been dug out of mounds and are preserved in various museums. The bowl is often quite as smooth and as highly polished as any used by modern smokers. Antiquarians divide the pipes into three classes, idol pipes, calu- mets and individual pipes. The idol pipes are so named because they are cut in the shape of some animal or to represent the human figure. Such pipes are found only in the ancient tumuli, and are con- sidered an indication of the extreme antiquity of the mounds, since the Indian was not an idolater. The calumet was the peace pipe. This was large and heavy, with a bowl sometimes the size of a toa- cup. The calumet was the property of the whole tribe, and was smoked only on formal occasions, such as meetings to conclude alliances or to make treaties. Smoking the calumet was a ceremony of great dignity. The taking of a whiff of the calumet pledged the smoker's honor to abide by the treaty. History of Georgia 31 The third class of pipes includes all the varieties of pipes for individual use. The bowls were made of stone or clay, a reed serving as a stem. Some of the bowls are no larger than a thimble, others hold an ounce of tobacco. Summary The name ''Indian'^ was given to the aborigines of America by the Spanish explorers. The most im- portant tribes that lived in Georgia were the Chero- kees and Creeks, the former occupying North Georgia, the latter Middle and South Georgia. The Indians were not a roving, nomadic people, but lived in fixed homes, grouped in village communities. Their homes were often well constructed of wood. In each of these villages there were local rulers^ chosen for special qualities of wisdom or physical prowess. There was no central government over all the red men belonging to a tribe. The Indians were very cruel to enemies captured in war, usually burn- ing them at the stake. They believed in a future exist- ence after death and buried their dead with bow and arrow, or at a later time, with gun and ammunition. Corn, peas, beans and other foodstuffs were regularly planted and cultivated. The Indians were skillful in spinning, weaving and dyeing cloth, in pottery making, and in carving and polishing stones. It is thought that the tumuli, or mounds, were not built by the Indians who inhabited the land when the 32 History of Georgia white men came, but that these structures were erected by some earlier and more numerous race, who were exterminated or driven away by the Indians. The most striking contributions of the Indians to modern civilization are the Indian maize, or corn, and the tobacco plant. Additional Reading: De Soto's March Throii<2;h Georgia: Joel Chandler Harris, Stories of Georgia, 7-19 (American Book Co.)- CHAPTER III THE ENGLISH BACKGROUND OF GEORGIA HISTORY Eighteenth Century England Some acquaintance with English history in the eighteenth century will help the student to under- stand why a new colony was established in America. People do not voluntarily forsake their native coun- try to begin life anew in a strange land unless urged by powerful motives. For fifty years preceding the founding of Georgia civil commotions and foreign wars had so broken into the ordinary life of the Eng- lish people that society was somewhat demoralized. England had recently changed her line of sovereigns from the Stuart family to the German house of Han- over, and the first two kings of this line, George I and George II, were more German than English, George I, in fact, never learning to speak English. Both these kings were stupid, coarse, immoral spendthrifts. There were no influences of a refining character at their court, and, of course, the royal example afifected all classes of society. Political Corruption It was a time of great political dishonesty. The right to sit in Parliament was openly bought and 34 History of Georgia sold, and votes had a market value like other com- modities. The prime minister, Robert Walpole, kept himself in power by bribing people to support him, using money from the national treasury for this purpose. Religious Influences The religious life of the people was at a low ebb. The established church had so far lost sight of its true mission that a great movement of reform headed by the Wesleys was begun, resulting at a later time in the founding of a new sect, the Methodist Church. An Era of Speculation In the realm of business, the spirit of the age showed itself in a mania for gambling and specula- tion. It was a time of great commercial expansion; people were in a hurry to get rich, and hence the air was full of speculative schemes. People were easily victimized by swindlers. Shares were eagerly bought in a company to change iron into gold and silver; in a scheme to discover perpetual motion; to make salt water fresh, and one set of men were bold enough to advertise shares in a plan "the nature of which is to be revealed hereafter." These companies were popularly known as "bubbles," and more than a hundred were organized in the first quarter of the century. Even the English government became in- volved in one of these companies, known as the South History of Georgia 35 Sea Company. This company was organized in 171 1 to carry on trade with Spanish America. The direc- tors offered to assume $150,000,000 of England's national debt and pay the bondholders in stock of the company. The government accepted the proposi- tion and used its influence to assure the public of the soundness of the investment. South Sea shares at once rose from a hundred pounds to a thousand pounds each. In a short time the "bubble burst," the shares fell and many thousands of investors were ruined. This was the greatest of all the speculative enterprises. With its failure scores of smaller com- panies went down and universal panic and distress followed. Extravagant Social Life People were very fond of ostentatious display. Middle class people lived beyond their means, spending everything they made for dress and expen- sive living. We are told that a dinner party often lasted seven hours and that people spent more on wine than on a son's education. This sort of extravagance, together with high prices and heavy taxation due to the wars, resulted in financial diffi- culties of a serious nature. Gin Drinking The bad tendencies of the time are well illustrated by the enormous increase in the consumption of in- 36 History of Georgia toxicants. In 1689 trade relations between England and France had been discontinued. Before that time drinking in England was largely confined to the wealthy classes who could afford the expensive French wines. But after 1689 Englishmen began to manufacture a cheap drink called '^gin." The crav- ing for drink is said to have "spread like a pestilence throughout the country." The statistics of the manufacture of intoxicants bear out the asser- tion. In 1684 only 527,000 gallons of spirits were distilled in England; in 1714 the figures had risen to 2,000,000 gallons; in 1727 to 3,601,000; in 1733 to 5,394,000, and in 1742 to 7,000,000 gallons. Most of this was gin, and its use among the lower classes became a great evil. It is said that retailers of gin hung out signs to the effect that one could be made drunk for a pennyworth of gin, dead drunk for two pence, and should have straw to sleep on for nothing. Naturally crime and immorality increased with the consumption of gin. Prisons for Debt The English law two centuries ago allowed a creditor to have a debtor arrested and imprisoned until payment was made. In many instances such imprisonment proved permanent, as the unfortunates so confined could make nothing while in jail, and their friends and relatives were often unwilling or unable to help them. Dickens' novel, "Little Dor- History of Georgia 37 rit," is the story of a prisoner for debt. Often highly respectable persons were thrown into noisome prisons with criminals of the lowest type and in surround- ings of incredible filth. The control of these prisons was not retained by the government, but was put up for sale to the highest bidder, sometimes bring- ing as high a price as twenty-five thousand dollars. As nearly always happens when the element of profit is allowed to enter such matters, the jailers maltreated the prisoners, exacting heavy fees for their main- tenance, and, as there was no government supervi- sion, casting those who could not pay into dungeons without ventilation, where death frequently followed neglect. Harsh Criminal Laws Men at that time were not easily moved by the sufferings of others. The laws were remarkable for the total absence of measures tending to relieve dis- tress. Criminal laws were very harsh, death being the penalty for about one hundred and sixty distinct offenses during George the First's reign. Such trivial matters as the stealing of an article worth one shilling, the sending of threatening letters, illegal cutting down of trees, and the like, were punishable by death. An eminent Englishman writing in the middle of the eighteenth century declared that ''Our punishments are the mildest in the known world. It is generally allowed that our laws are merciful, just 38 History of Georgia and perfectly agreeable to the genius of this nation." When we reflect that at the present time there are many people who would abolish the death penalty for even the most serious crimes, we can see how greatly the opinion of the world has changed on the subject of punishment. The harsh laws in England did not check crime, but caused it to increase, as criminals would commit serious crimes to conceal minor offenses. It is the certainty of punishment, not its severity, that checks crime. Investigation of Prisons for Debt So great became the abuse of the prison system that in 1729 the matter attracted the attention of Parliament, and in that year an act for clearing the debtors' prisons was passed. It is said that 97,248 ^persons claimed the benefit of the measure. |A r parliamentary investigation into the conditions of the 1 prisons was made on the motion of James Edward V Oglethorpe. Scheme to Found a New Colony So gruesome were the facts brought to light by the investigating committee that Oglethorpe began to consider the possibility of doing something to give the released prisoners for debt a new start in life. The most practicable and permanent relief seemed to be the colonizing of these people in America. It was natural that this idea should have occurred to Ogle- History of Georgia 39 thorpe, because Englishmen had grown accustomed to see their fellow countrymen leave for the new world, in search of political and religious liberty. Oglethorpe and other gentlemen whom he had inter- ested in the plan therefore appealed to King George II, and received a grant of certain lands in America in the lower part of the colony of South Carolina, to be erected into the colony of Georgia. James Edward Oglethorpe The trait of character that distinguished Ogle- thorpe from Englishmen of his time was that in a notoriously corrupt and selfish age he sympathized with the sufferings of the unfortunate. He has been called the '^father of philanthropy." Concerned with the troubles of others in an age when altruism was unknown, leaving England and a life of ease and affluence to spend several years in a strange, un- pleasant environment, Oglethorpe challenges our unbounded admiration. The public men of his time knew that English life was honeycombed with vice and suffering, but they did not grasp the idea that the State could and should do something to remedy the evils. The early history of Georgia has a unique interest in that it was the first instance of a colony's being established by a government to relieve pauper- ism. Any human effort which is undertaken on purely unselfish grounds commands respect and we instinctively honor the man who was capable of 40 History of Georgia James Edward Oglethorpe. From an engravmg lent by Mr. W. J. DeRenne. devoting his life to such a project. It took a man of remarkable strength of purpose to invade a w^ilder- ness w^ith a company of broken-down traders and professional men and expect to make it a garden spot. Little is known of Oglethorpe's early life. He was born in 1689. He entered Oxford, but left at History of Georgia 41 fifteen years of age to become a soldier under Prince Eugene of Savoy in the War of the Spanish Succes- sion. In 1714 he was made a captain-lieutenant in Queen Anne's Life Guards. Entering Parliament in 1722, he was a somewhat undistinguished member of that body until the prison investigation began. Summary The early eighteenth century was a period in which English society was in an unsettled condition. A long period of wars abroad and civil troubles at home, the disorganized state of the business world and the financial difficulties incident to extravagant living and high prices, made it a favorable time to launch a new colony. The immediate occasion of the plan to create the colony of Georgia was the desire to relieve unfortunate prisoners for debt. The leader of the enterprise was a member of Parliament, named James Edward Oglethorpe, who had made a reputation as a soldier in the foreign wars Additional Reading: Oglethorpe: Smith, C. H,, History of Georgia, Chap. I (Ginn & Co.). Prisons for Debt: Dickens, Little Dorrit, Chap. VI. CHAPTER IV THE BEGINNINGS OF THE COLONY, 1 732-1 740 ^ The Charter King George II signed the Charter of the Colony of Georgia on June 9, 1732. The name ^'Georgia" was adopted in honor of the reigning monarch. The twenty men who petitioned for the land grant were styled ^'Trustees for Establishing the Colony of Georgia in America." They were empowered to ordain laws and regulations for the government of the colony, to appoint a governor, establish courts, trans- port settlers, and distribute the land to immigrants. The Trust was to last twenty-one years, and no salary or other financial profit was to be enjoyed by mem- bers of the Trust. Purposes of the Colony From the Charter and from advertisements pub- lished by the Trustees we learn that there were several ends to be secured in founding the colony, in addition to the assistance of the distressed prisoners for debt. Georgia was to be a sort of buffer colony ^ Jones, C. C., History of Georgia. This is the most detailed and accurate history of the period of the settlement. 42 History of Georgia 43 Eastern North America in 1732. for the protection of South Carolina from the Indians and Spanish. The accompanying map shows that at 44 History of Georgia the time of the founding of Georgia the land now constituting the state of Florida was owned by the Spanish, and that, furthermore, the Spanish claimed the country as far north as the Edisto River in South Carolina. The French held the country about the Mississippi River and Mobile Bay, and their claims extended as far east as the sources of the Savannah River. All the territory west of the Savannah was, therefore, in dispute between the three powers, and English, French and Spanish traders competed for the profitable Indian trade. The Spanish were con- stantly threatening South Carolina, encouraging slave insurrections and harboring runaway slaves, thus preventing the peaceful development of that colony. The danger of slave insurrection in South Carolina was great. In an address to the Crown in 1734 the Assembly of that colony said: "We are sub- jected to many intestine dangers from the great num- ber of negroes among us, who amount at least to 22,000 persons, and are three to one of all your majesty's white subjects in this province." As will later appear, the peculiar method of land tenure in Georgia and the prohibition of slavery were in part the result of the desire of the founders to make Georgia a strong military colony. The third end to be attained was commercial profit. It was believed that a colony located to the south of Carolina would produce valuable wines and silk and thus relieve England of the necessity of purchasing these com- History of Georgia 45 modities from other nations. Still another purpose of the founders was to christianize the Indians. Mis- sionaries were sent out from England for this work, though very little was accomplished. The Original Land Grant The territory granted by the charter was that part of South Carolina lying between the Savannah and Altamaha Rivers, and westward from their sources to the '^South Seas." The knowledge of the geog- raphy of the continent was still meagre. No one knew just how far westward lay the Pacific Ocean, and the expression ''South Seas" meant simply indefi- nitely westward. Religion Freedom in the matter of religious worship was offered to all except Catholics. This discrimination against Catholics was due to historical causes. In 1688 the Catholic monarch, James II, was expelled from England, and it was made the law of the land that no Catholic should ever sit on the throne. Catho- lics were also excluded from holding any civil or military office or from sitting in Parliament. For many years the exiled family of Stuart schemed to regain the lost throne, usually with the assistance of a powerful party in England and with the sympathy of Catholic France. Only seventeen years before the granting of the charter of Georgia there had been 46 History of Georgia Charter Boundaries of Georgia. a formidable rising of the Catholics in favor of the Stuart Pretender. So it was natural that English- History of Georgia 47 men did not care to harbor within the new colony persons whom they regarded as hostile to the Eng- lish throne and religion. Selection of the First Emigrants Equipped with this charter, giving them full rights to organize a colony, the Trustees began to hold meetings in July, 1732. Many kind-hearted persons became interested in the scheme. Some of them went about raising subscriptions for the colony; others entered their names for subscriptions in a book placed at the Bank of England for that purpose. The month of September was spent in looking into the cases of men who had asked to be sent out as colonists. The Trustees did their best to select only such men as were honest, deserving and unfortunate. Although those chosen were undoubtedly weak members of society, men who had failed to maintain themselves, it would be very far from the truth to suppose that they were degenerates, jail-birds or criminals in the usual meaning of those words. The only crime which they had committed was that of improvidence. By the end of October one hundred and fourteen persons, men, women and children, had been chosen. A small sailboat named The Ann, of two hundred tons burden, was obtained for the voyage, and on November i6th, 1732, the party sailed. Without serious mishap they reached Charleston, S. C, on January 13th, 1733, where the Carolinians extended 48 History of Georgia them a cordial welcome. Proceeding southward, the settlers, on February 12th, reached the spot selected by Oglethorpe for planting the colony. Town of Savannah Begun The site chosen was on a bluff overlooking the Savannah River and eighteen miles from its mouth. A tribe of Indians known as Yamacraws lived there. Oglethorpe and his little band began to fell trees and build houses, all for a while living in tents. A pub- lic garden, designed as a nursery, was laid out, in which mulberry trees, vines, olives and various herbs were planted. A commissary was opened, from which provisions were distributed to the colonists. Oglethorpe Treats with the Indians The chief of the tribe of Yamacraws was one Tomo Chi Chi, an aged man of exceptional character. He and Oglethorpe became fast friends, a fact which accounts for the freedom the settlers enjoyed from troubles with the Indians. As soon as the work of laying out the town and erecting dwellings was under wa}^, Oglethorpe arranged through Tomo Chi Chi a meeting of all the tribes living in the neighborhood, and on May 21st, 1733, a treaty was made with the Creeks, Uchees and Cherokees, affirming the title of the colony of Georgia to the region lying between the Savannah and Altamaha Rivers, and westward as far as tide water ran, several islands along the History of Ccorg'ui 49 coast being reserved to the Indians. The interpreter who made this treaty possible was a half-breed woman named Mary Musgrove, who had married an English trader. Indian Chiefs go to England When Oglethorpe returned to England in 1734 to bring out more settlers, he took with him Tomo Chi Chi and a party of chiefs. After a voyage of seventy days, the party disembarked in England, and were conveyed in three of the king's coaches to Kensington Palace, where the Indians were received by the King. The simple-minded red men wished to be presented in their usual scanty costume, which left most of the body bare, but Oglethorpe dissuaded them from so doing, though all painted their faces. Later the Indians were presented to the Archbishop of Canter- bury, visited Eton, Hampton Court, the Tower of London, and other noted places. Tomo Chi Chi was deeply impressed by the magnificence of Lon- don and the visible signs of the power of England, and was always on the side of peaceful relations with the white man. Coming of the Salzburgers^ The activity of the Trustees did not cease with the settling of one place. The first important band of : ^ Strobel, P. A., The Salzburgers. This book, published in 1855 and now out of print, gives the facts relative to the Salz- burjjer settlement. 50 History of Georgia Augusta Frederic; 3V Settlement of Georgfia 1733-1752 History of Georgia 51 colonists to come after the founding of Savannah was a party of Salzburgers, who were located, in 1734, at a point on the Savannah River, twenty-five miles north of Savannah. The immigrants named the place Ebenezer (stone of help) "in commemoration of their wondrous deliverances and present joys." The Salzburgers were a protestant people who had the misfortune to live in the territory of a Catho- lic Bishop in South Germany. Their ruler sub- jected them to such cruel persecution that they were forced to forsake their homes. The Salzburgers were scattered out over Europe and America. There were seventy-eight persons in their first migration to Georgia. The town of Ebenezer was located in the present county of Effingham. It was not built on the Savannah River, but six miles off on a winding creek which flowed into the river. By water the distance to the river was twenty-five miles. Transportation was, therefore, difficult, since there were no roads and the people had to depend on the water. The Ger- mans asked to be removed to a more convenient loca- tion on the river, and this was done in 1736. Other Salzburgers came to Georgia and made set- tlements along the Savannah. By 1741 there were 1,200 German Protestants in the colony, and in 1751 their number had increased to 1,500. These Ger- mans, coming to secure religious liberty, settled in groups or congregations with the church as the center of their community life. Eventually the religious 52 History of Georgia character of their settlements was abandoned, they ceased being a separate people, and were absorbed in the population of Georgia. Needless to say, with their habits of industry and high moral ideals, these people were a valuable element in the colony. The Moravians^ In 1735 a small band of Moravians, another Ger- man protestant sect, came to Georgia and were given homes on the Savannah River, between Ebenezer and Savannah. There were only forty-seven persons in this party. Though a people of great worth, frugal, industrious, and orderly, they played no part in the development of Georgia. Their religion prohibited them from fighting and they had come to Georgia on the express agreement that they were not to be called on for military service. Their aversion for war, even in self-defense, could not be understood by the other colonists, and the Moravians found them- selves uncomfortable in Georgia. They accordingly left the colony between 1738 and 1740, going to Pennsylvania. Augusta During the same year, 1735, another town was laid out, this time north of Savannah. The town was named Augusta in honor of one of the royal ^ Fries, Adelaide L., The Moravians in Georgia. History of Georgia 53 princesses. Augusta soon became quite an important place for Indian trade, not less than six hundred persons engaged in this business having the town as headquarters. Some two thousand pack horse loads of skins were annually brought to the town. Scots Settle on the Altamaha River, 1736 The next accession of colonists was a company of Scotch Highlanders, who were located on the Altamaha River, some sixteen miles from its mouth. The town they named New Inverness, for their native town in Scotland, and the district Darien, in memory of the unsuccessful settlement of the Isthmus of Darien in America in 1698. Later the town itself became known as Darien. Some of the early Eng- lish immigrants were already proving themselves un- fitted for pioneer life, and Oglethorpe brought over these Highlanders because they were a hardier and more energetic people. This settlement was made with the view of strengthening the southern frontier of Georgia. The Scots were especially well qualified for military service. Frederica Foundea In the year 1736 the town of Frederica, so named in honor of Frederick, Prince of Wales, only son of George II, was laid out. The village was placed on St. Simon's Island, on the sound that separates the island from the mainland. A fort was built at the 54 History of Geoj'gia southern extremity of the island. Frederica was founded to give additional strength to the colony on its exposed side. Forgotten Villages^ In addition to these more important settlements, a number of smaller villages or hamlets were laid out. Even the names of some of them have been forgotten. A number of French families were located at a village named Highgate, about five miles from Savannah. Abercorn, Hampstead and Joseph's Town were other villages near Savannah. Parliamentary Appropriations To June, 1740, Parliament had appropriated nearly a half million dollars to aid the colony, and about ninety thousand more had been donated by private persons. With this assistance the Trust had sent over 1,521 settlers, of whom 915 were English and Scotch, and 606 foreign protestants. There were also a few who had come over at their own expense. Government of the Colony None of the Trustees except Oglethorpe came to Georgia. They remained in London and transacted the business of the colony as best they could through written orders and correspondence with those who ^ Jones, C. C, Dead Towns of Georgia. History of Georgia 55 were entrusted with the local administration. As long as Oglethorpe lived in Georgia he had complete control over the colony. In 1741 Georgia was divided into two counties, one called Savannah County, including all the settlements on the Savan- nah and southward to the Altamaha; the other, Frederica, embracing Darien and the settlements south of the Altamaha. For each county a President and four assistants were authorized. In Savannah County William Stephens,^ who had been the resi- dent secretary of the Trustees, was made President. No President was appointed for Frederica County, because Oglethorpe was usually in Frederica, look- ing after the military defenses of the colony. On Oglethorpe's return to England in 1743, Frederica County was abolished and Stephens was made Presi- dent for the entire colony. The duties of the President and assistants were to preside as judges in the court at Savannah, to act as general overseers of affairs and keep the Trustees informed as to the condition of the colony. ^ William Stephens, the first President of the colony of Georgia, was born on the Isle of Wight, off the south coast of England. He came to Georgia late in life to act as secretary to the Trus- tees. He was elevated to the Presidency of the colony after Ogle- thorpe left, being then more than seventy years old. During his entire stay in Georgia, he kept a diary, which has been published in two large volumes. This diary is one of the most important sources of information about the early history of Georgia. 56 Histo?-y of Georgia Summary After securing a charter from King George II, in 1732, conveying to them the land lying between the Altamaha and the Savannah Rivers, the Trustees at once began to send out colonists. The towns of Savannah, Ebenezer, Darien, Frederica and Augusta and several minor settlements were established with- in three years after the landing of the first colonists. This was very quick work, when the difficulties of crossing the ocean and of making headway in the wilderness are considered. It is interesting to note that Georgia was quite a cosmopolitan colony, con- taining English, Scotch, German and French people. More than half a million dollars were expended in the first seven years in furthering the plans of the Trustees, most of which was contributed by the Eng- lish government. Some 1,500 persons were sent over at the expense of the Trust. The government of the colony was virtually in the hands of Oglethorpe as long as he remained in Georgia. On his final return to England, in 1743, William Stephens was appointed ^'President" of the colony. No form of self-govern- ment was as yet allowed the colonists. Additional Reading: Mary Musgrove: Harris, Joel Chandler, Stories of Georgia^ pp. 28-40. CHAPTER V THE CRITICAL PERIOD, 1 733-1 750 Unfavorable Physical Conditions In spite of the liberal support of Parliament, the aid of generous individuals and the untiring efforts of Oglethorpe and the Trustees, the colony was not at first successful. Conditions of pioneer life are always severe and try the strength of the hardiest of men, for it is no easy task to make clearings in the wilder- ness for farming purposes. But the conditions in Georgia were unusually bad. We have seen from the first chapter that the coast is low, flat and swampy; the soil sandy and sometimes very unfertile, and the climate malarious. The settlers found it hard to make a living, sickness was very common and deaths fre- quent. Ten of the forty-seven Moravians died in the three or four years they lived in Georgia. The records kept by the Dorchester colony^ from 1752 to 1772 showed one hundred and thirty-four deaths to one hundred and ninety-three births. Malarial fever was the usual trouble. The Salzburgers suffered from the same disease. The number of orphans be- came sufficiently large to lead to the establishment ^ See page 9I. 57 58 History of Georgia of an orphans' asylum near Savannah/ The work of clearing the land killed many settlers, and even when at a later day rice plantations had been created by negro labor, the white owners found it prudent to live away from the swampy region during a part of the year. Peculiar Method of Granting Lands Even had the physical environment been ideal, the peculiar regulations of the Trustees governing the holding of land, and their policy in regard to slavery, would have prevented the rapid development of the colony. A limit of fifty acres was set for each man who went to Georgia at the expense of the Trust. Anyone who went at his own expense and carried as many as ten white servants was allowed five hundred acres. In no case was complete ownership of the land given to the settler. He had possession during his life, but was prohibited from selling, mortgaging or giving away his land. On his death, his eldest son inherited the property. If there were no male heirs, the property went back to the Trust. Explanation of this Law The idea of the Trustees in making such land laws becomes clear when we recall the purposes for which ^ This was the famous Bethesda Orphanage, established in 1740 through the exertions of Reverend George Whitefield. One hundred and fifty orphans were received during the first year. History of Georgia 59 the colony was established. The two main ends sought were to aid an unfortunate class of people who had failed in life, and to protect South Carolina. The Trustees, realizing the poor material from which they were attempting to make self-supporting colonists, thought by denying entire control over the land to create a permanent class of small land- holders, prevent the growth of large plantations, and protect the less industrious from sinking into the condition of tenants, servants and day laborers. At the time of the founding of Georgia, there were many complaints from South Carolina as to the bad effects of the ownership of much of the land by a few rich men. From the military point of view, the idea was to have a man permanently located on each fifty acre tract. Each settler was regarded as a soldier, and, of course, if the small farms were allowed to be- come united, the military strength of the colony would be lessened. Prohibition of Slavery As in the case of the land laws, economic and military considerations account for the prohibition of negro slavery. It was the purpose of the founders to give a new start in life to men who had failed. The expense of migrating from the Old World to the New was borne by the Trustees, and everything necessary to begin farming was furnished the immi- 60 History of Georgia grants, such as land, tools and even provisions for a year. But they were not to be relieved from doing actual work with their hands. The Trustees did not propose to allow the immigrants to bask in the warm southern sunshine and reap the rewards of slave labor. From the military point of view, the defenseless- ness of South Carolina was due in large measure to the fact that the number of slaves in that colony far exceeded the number of white people. In 1733 there were 22,000 blacks to 7,333 whites. The danger of a slave insurrection was always imminent. Clearly, if slavery were permitted in Georgia, the new colony would itself be as weak as South Carolina, and would be of no use as a military protection. Aside from the moral and military objections to slavery, the Trustees denied the use of negroes on the further ground that while recognizing the necessity for slaves in producing the heavier commodities, such as rice and lumber, it was their intention that the Georgians should confine their efforts largely to growing grapes for wine-making and the production of raw silk. In such light employments the labor of women and children, the Trustees believed, would be more useful and far less expensive than that of negro slaves. Strenuous efforts over a long period of time were made to produce silk and wine in Georgia. Skilled foreigners were brought over to instruct the people in these industries, and the efforts of the History of Georgia 61 colonists were encouraged by large bounties. But neither industry succeeded. Various reasons are given for this failure — the variableness of the climate, lack of skill on the part of the colonists, and the greater profit to be made from other lines of agriculture for which conditions were more favorable. Prohibition of Rum Another law which caused a good deal of grum- bling on the part of the colonists was the prohibition of the importation or sale of whiskey. The use of rum and brandy, it was held, would tend to encour- age those habits of idleness from which many of the new settlers had suffered. What has already been said as to the growth of the drink habit in England will be a sufficient explanation of the action of the Trustees in prohibiting the use of intoxicants. Beer and wine were not included in this prohibition. Oglethorpe provided both for his first shipload of immigrants. Objections to the Land Law While the law against the complete ownership of land was a preventive of the growth of large estates, it also discouraged the more thrifty colonists. It was absurd to suppose that all the colonists were of equal capacity, thrift and diligence. The Trustees showed a limited knowledge of human nature in thinking that they could legislate people into 62 History of Georgia equality. It was natural that the unprogressive element should sell out their land to the industrious and saving, and it was unjust to impede the one class in order to furnish an artificial prop to the other. The settlers in and about Savannah early became dis- satisfied with the form of land tenure and petitioned for a change. It was declared that fifty acres was an insufiicient amount of land and that sometimes even that small area lay on the pine barrens or in marshes. Another serious objection to the law was that the immigration of independent colonists of means was prevented by the denial of complete possession of the land. It will be recalled that the Trustees did not confine the grants of land to persons sent over at the expense of the Trust. Any one who desired to do so was free to immigrate to Georgia at his own charge, provided he carried ten white male servants. Under this provision only 27,000 acres of land were distributed. The largest number of grants in any one year was nineteen, in 1736. After that year the num- ber steadily declined, until in 1740 there was only one applicant. This failure to attract what was the most desirable kind of settlers was due to the land tenure regulations and the denial of slavery. The discontented colonists began to neglect their farms and to spend their time complaining of the hardships imposed upon them by the Trustees and in agitating for changes. Many of them abandoned the History of Georgia 63 colony. One of the discontented element told the Trustees, before whom he appeared in 1739, ^^^^ there were not more than a thousand people left in Georgia. Oglethorpe Opposes Change The Trustees were slow in making changes. They knew nothing at first hand of the needs of the colo- nists, but had to depend on information given them by their secretary, William Stephens, and General Oglethorpe, both of whom were opposed to free ownership of land and to slavery. Stephens and Oglethorpe wrote the Trustees that the people who left Georgia were of an extremely undesirable class and that the colony was fortunate in losing them. So great became the discouragement of the people that Oglethorpe in 1739 tried to stimulate them by offer- ing a prize of two shillings for each bushel of corn produced, and one shilling for each bushel of pota- toes, but this experiment did not succeed. Repeal of the Land Law The agitation against the land law and the prohi- bition of slavery was in progress when the war with Spain broke out.^ A regiment of soldiers was sent to Georgia and stationed on the southern frontier. The presence of the regiment made the military ^ See Chapter VI. 64 History of Georgia feature of the colony of less importance, and the Trustees took this opportunity to modify the land law, though it was only in 1750, after a succession of changes had been made, that absolute possession of lands was given the colonists. Repeal of Prohibition The prohibition of whiskey selling and drinking did not work very successfully. As has been said, beer and wine were not prohibited, and licenses were issued for the sale of these beverages. It was found impossible to prevent licensed houses and blind tigers (to use a phrase now current) from selling whiskey. In 1738 the magistrates of Savannah called attention to the "vile abuse lately crept in among us, in selling spirituous Liquors in many private houses, unlicensed to sell any sort of Drink, which produced grievous consequences, and would tend to the Ruin of the Colony if not suppressed." The juries, however, refused to convict for the offense of operating un- licensed saloons. In 1742 the matter was laid before Parliament, and the Trustees were required by parlia- mentary act to repeal the law on this subject. Indented Secvants Though negro slavery was denied, a system of indented servants was established. Any settler was allowed to bring over white laborers from Europe, binding them by a legal agreement known as an History of Georgia 65 "indenture," to work a certain term of years in return for the passage money. The Trustees offered grants of twenty acres and later of fifty acres to those in- dented servants who faithfully worked out their time and desired to remain. A few of the servants brought over under this arrangement did well and took advantage of the Trustees' offer, but by far the larger number refused to work after a short time, became idle, vicious and drunken, killed the cattle of their masters and of the Trust, and ran away to South Carolina, where every obstacle was put in the way of their recapture. Oglethorpe wrote in 1739 that the people were disgusted with white servants. Of course, they were no better suited than their masters for labor in the climate of Georgia. The trouble with white servants naturally increased the demand for slaves. Disagreement among Colonists about Slavery At first only the Savannah people urged the Trus- tees to allow slaves. President Stephens and Ogle- thorpe reported to the Trustees that it was only the most worthless and idle element that desired negroes, and this opinion was apparently sustained by the fact that the people of Ebenezer and Darien petitioned against the introduction of slaves. The German and Scotch settlers had come largely from the class of people who were accustomed to hard manual toil; but the Savannah people came from the trading and 66 History of Georgia professional classes of England, and were unfitted for agricultural labor in the Georgia climate. For a number of years the Trustees refused to listen to any petitions or resolutions on this subject. They had definitely decided never to allow slavery, and this determination was weakened only when they came to realize that the colony would be depopulated unless slavery was permitted. Agreement among Colonists With every passing year it became harder to make a living, and finally the people at Ebenezer and Darien, the Germans and Scots, joined with the other colonists in petitioning for negroes. The case of the colonists was strongly expressed by James Haber- sham,^ one of the most highly respected men of Savannah. Habersham had been opposed to slaves. ^ James Habersham was born in England twenty years before the charter of Georgia was granted. He was therefore twenty- seven years of age when the first of the letters below was written. He was a member of the first business house established in Georgia. He held many positions of honor, and when the Revolution broke out, took the side of the king against the Patriots, a course taken by many of the older colonists. In regard to slavery, Habersham wrote the Trustees in 1739 as follows: "Though the people have been as industrious as possible, they are not able to live; for I be- lieve there is not an instance of one planter in the colony who can support his family with his own produce. Besides, the sun is so extremely hot here in the summer, that no white man can stay In the field the best part of the day. All who come to settle here are put into a wilderness, which they have to clear before they can plant It ; which Is so intolerably costly, with white hands. History of Georgia 67 SO that when he expressed the opinion that the colony would not survive unless the law was changed, his word carried great weight. In 1748, Reverend Mr. Bolzius, pastor of the Germans at Ebenezer, who had been a strong upholder of the views of the Trus- tees, saw fit to write them: "Things being now in such a melancholy state, I must humbly beseech your honors not to regard any more our or our friends' petitions against negroes." In the same year Reverend George Whitefield added his testimony to the neces- sity for slaves. There being now a practically unanimous desire in the colony for negroes, and it appearing that the people would leave unless slavery was allowed, the Trustees in 1749 removed the restrictions, thus intro- ducing into Georgia a system of labor which brought in its train many important consequences. that I have heard some affirm that to clear our good land — which is swamp — effectually with them, would cost almost as much as they could buy land for in some parts of England." Eight years later, one of his letters indicated that matters were getting worse: *'The few remaining inhabitants here are so dispirited and heart- broken, that, supposing any real encouragement could be pro- posed, I almost reckon it an impossibility to persuade them that anything of this nature can be done, and he that would attempt it would be looked upon rather as their enemy than their friend, and I must confess that things have had such a dreadful appear- ance for some time past, that, rather than see the colony deserted and brought to desolation, and the inhabitants reduced to want and beggary, I really, with the Trustees, would have consented to the use of negroes, and was sorry to hear that they had written so warmly against them," 68 History of Georgia Summary The progress of the colony was slow during the first twenty years on account of the policy of the Trustees in denying entire control over the lands granted to the settlers, and in prohibiting slavery and whiskey. These laws were due partly to the feel- ing that many of the colonists were so weak that they had to be protected from the danger of sinking into the condition of laborers and from idle and vicious habits, and partly to the desire to make the colony strong in a military way for the protection of South Carolina. But it was found in practice that the laws would not work, and in order to prevent the abandon- ment of the colony, the Trustees were compelled to repeal all of their restrictive laws. We shall see that an era of great prosperity followed the change. CHAPTER VI THE SPANISH WAR, 1740-1742 Boundary Dispute In a former chapter^ the rival claims of the great powers to the land of North America were explained. Spain, it will be remembered, claimed that the Eng- lish settlement of Georgia was an encroachment on her territory, which, according to the Spanish view, extended as far north as the Edisto River, in South Carolina. The English, on the other hand, contended that the St. John's River was the northern boundary of the Spanish province of Florida. Oglethorpe Prepares for War Three years after the first immigrants reached Georgia the Spanish government demanded that the English abandon all settlements in the new colony, and Oglethorpe saw that sooner or later it would be necessary to end the dispute by war. He at once began to prepare for the struggle. Frederica and Darien were especially designed to protect the southern frontier; on the southern end of St. Simon's Island Fort St. Simon's was erected ; Fort St. Andrew ^ See chapter IV. 69 70 History of Georgia and Fort William were built on the two extremities of Cumberland Island, while near the mouth of St. John's River, on San Juan Island, another fort, called Fort St. George, was placed. Financial Difficulties Oglethorpe was almost fatally handicapped in these preparations by lack of cooperation from Eng- land. His letters^ are full of entreaties for money with which to carry on the work of fortification. He complained that his forts were falling into ruin, and that he lacked guns, ships and ammunition. Even when grants were made by Parliament, the money often came too late to be used to the greatest advantage. The policy of the prime minister of the time, Walpole, was to preserve peace, if possible, and he was slow to make warlike preparations. In the direction of furnishing soldiers, the most the government could be induced to do was to authorize Oglethorpe to raise a regiment in England. Ogle- thorpe succeeded in doing this and was made Colonel of the force. In addition, Parliament created him General and Commander-in-Chief of his Majesty's forces in South Carolina and Georgia. Discontent of the Colonists These preparations for war were going on at the time when the agitation against the laws of the Trus- ^ Georgia Historical Society, Collections III. Contains many Oglethorpe letters. History of Georgia 71 tees in regard to land tenure and slavery was at its height. The war scare and the necessity of requir- ing the people to do garrison duty increased the dis- tress of the colonists by interrupting agricultural pursuits. Many settlers were reduced to dependence upon the Trust for their food, and large numbers of them deserted the colony, going to South Carolina, where conditions were more favorable. In 1739, Oglethorpe informed the Trustees that it was so diffi- cult to obtain food that colonists were stealing the cattle belonging to the Trust. The Wesleys The backwardness of the government In support- ing Oglethorpe, and the distress of the colonists, were enough to make the General's position decidedly unpleasant, but in addition to his other worries, religious dissension had to be dealt with. Reverend John Wesley and his brother Charles came to Georgia in 1736, the former locating at Savannah, the latter at Frederlca. They came at the Invitation of the Trustees to perform the duties of pastor at Savannah and Frederlca, respectively. These great and good men, who later became so famous as the founders of Methodism, were at that time ministers in the regular English Church. They were com- paratively young, John being thirty-three, and Charles twenty-nine, and did not fit in very well with the pioneer society of Georgia. The colonists 72 History of Georgia felt that they interfered too much in their private affairs and in the civil administration of the law. They became unpopular with the settlers, and realiz- ing that their usefulness would be greater in other fields, they left Georgia, Charles in the year of his arrival, John in 1737. Oglethorpe Invades Florida In 1713 at the close of the famous war of the Spanish Succession, England had agreed not to en- gage in trade with Spain's South American colonies, except that once every year a shipload of merchan- dise might be sent. But the English merchantmen had not obeyed the law. They found it profitable to smuggle goods into the Spanish colonies. In order to prevent this illegal traffic, Spain stationed ships along the coast to catch the smugglers, and they often maltreated the sailors on trading vessels which had been seized. Public opinion in England demanded that Spain be punished, and in 1739 England de- clared war. The struggle between Oglethorpe and the Span- iards in Florida is, therefore, a part of the larger war. Although Georgia was much weaker In military re- sources than Florida, Oglethorpe decided to put on a bold front and Invade the enemy's country. This was good policy, because an agricultural people are stronger In an offensive expedition than as a defen- sive force. Accordingly. In January, 1740, the Gen- History of Georgia 73 Coast of Georgia and Florida: Spanish War. 74 History of Georgia cral ascended the St. John's River, and, supported by Indians, took two Spanish forts, Picolata and St. Francis, facing each other on opposite sides of the river, but did not advance across the narrow neck of land, twenty miles, approximately, against St. Au- gustine, the great fortress of Florida. These two forts were important because, being on opposite sides of the river, they enabled the Spaniards to command an easy passage of the stream, in the event they de- cided to make an attack on Georgia by land. After taking these forts, Oglethorpe returned to Georgia, and we next hear of him before the Assembly in South Carolina, pleading for assistance in men and money. South Carolina was very unwilling to help, because that colony did not relish the idea of play- ing second fiddle to the younger colony of Georgia. The aid they gave amounted to very little, and even those South Carolinans who joined Oglethorpe's army cooperated in a half-hearted way. The Unsuccessful Siege of St. Augustine In May, the General, with an army the size of which has been variously stated, but which did not exceed two thousand men, advanced against St. Au- gustine. His plan was a combined land and sea attack. The army was to land near the mouth of St. John's River and march against the city; the fleet of six British men-of-war was to enter the narrow sound that separates the island of Anastasia from the main- History of Georgia 75 land, and attack the city in front. Oglethorpe exe- cuted his part of the movement successfully, but the fleet was unable to enter the sound on account of the shallowness of the water. The intended storming of the city had to be abandoned, and Oglethorpe de- cided to lay siege to the place. This decision turned out to be an error of judgment. The town was well fortified, with fifty cannon mounted on its walls; the besieged Spaniards outnumbered the besiegers, while the war vessels could give no effective aid. In spite of these facts, the town was besieged for three weeks, but the General's cannon were of such small size and the distance so great that little impression was made on the strong walls of the fortress. In June the Spaniards made a successful sortie, reprovisioned the town, and shortly afterwards a large reinforce- ment of men and food came from Cuba. The situa- tion was clearly hopeless, Oglethorpe was sick with fever, and his troops exhausted. The siege was there- fore abandoned and the army returned to Georgia, reaching Frederica on July loth. The Spanish Invade Georgia, 1742 Two years passed before the Spanish undertook to carry out their long cherished plan of destroying the colony of Georgia. In 1742, the British siege of Havana, Cuba, at that time a Spanish possession, failed, and a large force was set free. This force was sent to St. Augustine to help the garrison there 76 History of Georgia in the movement against Georgia. The main attack of the Spaniards came in July, and was directed against Frederica. On the 5th, a fleet of thirty-six vessels appeared before St. Simon's Fort. To meet the Spanish army of five thousand men (some author- ities say six thousand), Oglethorpe had less than seven hundred soldiers. The approaching Spanish fleet was cannonaded by the guns of the Fort, but after four hours of fierce fighting succeeded in get- ting by in the direction of Frederica. Oglethorpe then concluding that the main attack would be by water, withdrew from Fort St. Simon's, dismantling the Fort, and marched his men back to Frederica. The Spanish army, however, disembarked about four miles from the Fort, and marched across to occupy it, pitching their camp there. The only avenue of approach from the camp of the enemy to Frederica was a narrow, rough road which Oglethorpe had cut through the dense woods and marshes. On the 7th of July, the advance guard of the Spaniards set out upon this road. Oglethorpe realized that his only chance of defeating the over- whelming force against him was to engage the enemy while they were straggling through the woods. Had they been given time to arrange a line of battle and attack him with their full force, defeat would have been inevitable. The General therefore marched out of Frederica with a party of Indians, Rangers, p.nd Highlanders, met the Spanish and won a signal History of Georgia 77 victory, either killing or capturing the greater part of the advance guard of about two hundred. He pursued the flying enemy almost back to their camp, and leaving three platoons of his regiment and the company of Highlanders to watch the enemy, re- turned to Frederica to prepare the remainder of his army to receive the attack of the main body of the Spanish army. Battle of Bloody Marsh While Oglethorpe was in Frederica, another de- tachment of the Spaniards advanced against the force he had left in the woods, and being overwhelmed, the Georgians retreated in the direction of Frederica. Two of the three platoons fled in wild disorder, but on reaching a certain bend in the road where there was an open area, one of the platoons, under Lieu- tenant Sutherland, and the company of Highlanders, commanded by Captain Mackay, decided to make a stand. They artfully concealed themselves in the woods and marsh about the open space. On reach- ing this point the pursuing Spanish halted to prepare a meal. Totally unconscious of their peril, they laid aside their arms, when suddenly a murderous fire was poured into the party from the hidden force of Georgians. About two hundred Spaniards were killed, only a few managing to escape back to the camp. This affair was known as the battle of Bloody Marsh. As soon as Oglethorpe heard the firing he 78 History of Georgia hastened up to support his men, but arrived too late to take part in the battle. Oglethorpe Works a Stratagem After this decisive repulse the Spanish army re- mained in their camp at St. Simon's for several days, debating what course to follow. Dissension sprang up among the officers, and the several divisions of the army refused to cooperate. Getting word of this state of affairs, Oglethorpe decided to make a night attack on the camp. When about a mile and a half from the camp, a Frenchman who had joined the Georgia force as a volunteer, suddenly fired his gun as a signal and deserted to the enemy. Ogle- thorpe was therefore obliged to give up the attack, as its only hope of success lay in surprising the Spanish. Later in the day he hit upon the happy idea of turning to his own advantage the treachery of the French deserter. He wrote a letter to the French- man in a manner intended to convince the Spanish commander (anticipating that the letter would fall into his hands) that the Frenchman was not really a deserter, but was a paid spy. Oglethorpe hired a Spanish prisoner to deliver the letter; and, as Ogle- thorpe had hoped, it was given to the Spanish com- mander. On opening the letter the Spaniard read instructions from Oglethorpe that the Frenchman should persuade the Spanish that they would be safe in attacking him on account of the weakness of the History of Georgia 79 army of the Georgians; that, if the Spanish decided to attack, they were to be led to a certain place, where an ambush would be arranged; but if the Spanish were unwilling to attack, the deserter was to use his best efforts to persuade them to remain a few days longer, since Oglethorpe was expecting large reinforcements from South Carolina. This letter so alarmed the timorous Spanish leader that he lost no time in getting his army back on the ships and weighing anchor. The failure of this at- tack on Frederica and the success of Oglethorpe's stratagem closed the episode of the Spanish invasion, no further attempt being made from St. Augustine to destroy the colony. Importance of the War The importance of this repulse of the Spanish army is that it meant the success of Georgia as a mili- tary colony. It had been planted to protect the neighboring colonies from invasion and had accom- plished this end. As an eminent English historian has written: '^Had anyone foretold that within ten years of its foundation the little settlement, built out of the worthless debris of over-civilization, would repel a foreign enemy, and serve as an efficient bul- wark against the tide of invasion which menaced the English colonies, he would have been a sanguine man."^ ^ Doyle, J. A., English Colonies in America, V, pp. 402-3. 80 History of Georgia Summary Ever since the establishment of the Colony of Georgia, a Spanish attempt to destroy it had been expected, Spain regarding the settlements as an encroachment on her territory. Oglethorpe was greatly hampered in preparing to meet attack on account of the internal troubles of the colony, the niggardly support of Parliament and the lack of suf- ficient aid from the stronger Colony of South Caro- lina. In 1740, he made an unsuccessful attack on St. Augustine. Two years later the Spanish invaded Georgia, five thousand strong, but were decisively defeated by Oglethorpe with a force of six hundred and fifty men, the victory being due to Oglethorpe's superior generalship and the timidity of the invaders. The victory was of first importance, because, if Georgia had been destroyed, the war would have been carried into the other English colonies. Additional Reading: Cooper, H. C, Life of Ogletliorpe, Chaps. XVI and XVIII. CHAPTER VII GEORGIA BECOMES A ROYAL PROVINCE, 1754 Reasons Why the Trustees Resigned When the Trustees were forced by the popular clamor to allow slaves and rum to be introduced and to abandon their land system, they felt that their plans had been a failure. Furthermore, interest in the colony had largely died out in England, private donations had ceased, and Parliament in 175 1 failed to make any appropriation to carry on the afifairs of the colony. The Trust would have expired in June, 1753, by the terms of the Charter, but the Trustees resigned in June, 1752, feeling that they could be of no further use, and desiring to place on other shoulders the responsibility of further con- ducting the affairs of the colony. Georgia passed under the direct control of the Crown. A proclama- tion was issued requiring the existing officials in Georgia to remain at their post until a new form of government could be arranged. The Three Types of Colonies Among the original thirteen colonies that became the United States there were three varieties of gov- 81 82 History of Georgia ernment. In Massachusetts, Connecticut and Rhode Island the people enjoyed self-government under liberal charters granted them by the English monarch. Connecticut and Rhode Island retained their local control throughout the colonial period. Another type was the proprietary colony, such as Pennsylvania, New York and the Carolinas. In this form of colony the appointment of the officials was usually in the hands of an individual to whom the king had granted the colony as a sort of estate. The majority of the colonies were originally of this type. The prevailing form of colonial government in the eighteenth century, however, was the Royal Province. The English government had a much larger share in the government of the royal province than in the other types of colonies, as the governor and council were appointed by the king and were not responsible to the people of the province. Such a colony had no charter, but the powers and duties of the officials were contained in their commissions and instruc- tions. In all the colonies the people had some voice in the government, since the members of the lower house of the Assembly were elected by popular vote. The establishment of a proprietary form of gov- ernment in Georgia in 1732 was a return to the older form of colonial organization. The twenty-one Trustees were given a large measure of control and no provision was made for an Assembly of elected representatives. The position of the proprietors of History of Georgia 83 Georgia, however, was very different from that of the earlier proprietors. They were prohibited from deriving any profit from the colony and could own no land in it, whereas profit was the sole attraction of their positions to the proprietors of most of the older colonies. How England Governed the Provinces The control of Great Britain over the colonies was exercised through various executive boards, of which the most important was the Board of Commissioners for Trade and Plantations, popularly known as the ''Board of Trade." This Board was responsible to the Privy Council of the king. It was the duty of the Board of Trade to draw up the form of govern- ment, to supervise colonial legislation, and look after the commercial interests of England in the colonies. Georgia Becomes a Royal Province On the resignation of the Trustees, Georgia was made a royal province. In March, 1754, the Com- missioners of Trade and Plantations submitted a form of government for the new province. The following is a brief description of the government under which Georgians lived until the Revolution. The Governor At the head of the new government stood the Governor, who was appointed by the king and held 84 History of Georgia ofBce during the king's pleasure. He was authorized to appoint all the officers who were not appointed directly by the crown; he presided over the highest court; could veto any act of the assembly, and had control over the granting of land. No governor of Georgia as a free state has ever been so powerful as were the royal governors. The Council The most interesting feature of the new govern- ment was the Council. It consisted of fourteen members appointed by the Crown to hold office for life, or during the king's pleasure. It not only advised the Governor in the performance of his executive duties, but sat as the upper house of the Assembly, in that capacity assisting in law making, and also, with the Governor, formed the court of appeals. This Council was closely modeled on the House of Lords of the English Parliament. The Commons House of Assembly The lower house of the Assembly was composed of representatives elected by the people. The first Assembly met in January, 1755, and consisted of eighteen members. Savannah had four representa- tives; Ebenezer, three; Augusta, two; the District of the Great and Little Ogeechee, two, and eight smaller districts one each. It was through the Com- mons House of Assembly that Georgians for the first time were permitted a share in their own government. History of Georgia 85 The Suffrage It was many years before ev*ery Georgian obtained the right to vote. During colonial days and for a time after the Revolution, certain restrictions were imposed on the exercise of the voting privilege. No one could vote who did not own at least fifty acres of land, and the possession of five hundred acres was required of members of the Assembly. Courts The principal court established was the General Court, located at Savannah. To preside over this court the Crown appointed a Chief Justice of Georgia. There were three assistant judges who were appointed by the governor. Inferior or justice courts were established to try minor cases. Governor John Reynolds (i 754-1 756) There were in all three royal governors. The first was Captain John Reynolds, of the Royal Navy, who was appointed on August 6th, 1754, and reached Georgia in October. His tenure of office lasted only until August, 1756. His administration began pleasantly, but he soon became involved in quarrels with the Assembly and was recalled by the English government. Governor Henry Ellis (i 757-1 760) To supersede Reynolds, Henry Ellis was sent to Georgia in February, 1757, as Lieutenant Governor. 86 History of Georgia He became Governor on May 17, 1758. Ellis was an efficient governor and during his short term of office the colony made considerable progress. The French and Indian War broke out while he was in office. It was the policy of the French and Spanish to stir up the Southern Indians to hostilities against the English. Governor Ellis's tactful handling of the Indians did a great deal to save the borders of Georgia from Indian massacres. The English Church Established in Georgia In 1758 the province was divided into eight Parishes. In each Parish religious services were directed to be observed in accordance with the forms of the English, or Episcopal, Church. In establish- ing the English Church, no other was forbidden, except the Catholic. There were Presbyterians, Baptists, Methodists, Lutherans and Hebrews in the colony. They were all at liberty to worship in their own way, but the government intended to give to the Episcopal Church a position of superiority simi- lar to that it enjoyed in England. All inhabitants, whatever their religious leanings, were required to pay the assessments to support the English Church. Governor James Wright (i 760-1 782) Governor Ellis was not a strong man physically and found himself unable to endure the heat of the southern summers. In 1759 he asked for a recall. History of Georgia 87 The request was granted, and he was relieved by Lieutenant Governor James Wright in the fall of 1760. Wright was made Governor on March 20th, 1761. He was the ablest and most popular of the three royal governors. His administration lasted from 1760 until the Revolutionary War. Indeed, his final departure from Georgia came only with the end of the struggle in 1782. The St. Mary's River Made the Southern Boundary At the close of the French and Indian War, in 1763, the French ceded to England all of their terri- tory east of the Mississippi River, and Spain gave up Florida. A proclamation of the British governmient of that year extended the limits of Georgia to the St. Mary's River. At the same time a 'Troclama- tion Line" was established, joining the headwaters of all the rivers that flow into the Atlantic. The colonists were required to confine their settlements to the east of this line. The country beyond was reserved to the Indians. Summary Disappointed at the failure of their plans for the colony, and having no funds with which to carry on the work, the Trustees resigned their office in 1752, and Georgia was made a Royal Province. This change meant that in the future Georgia would be under the direct control of the English government. 88 History of Ueorgia History of Georgia 89 A new form of government was set up, including a Governor appointed for life by the Crown, a Council similarly appointed, and an elective House of Com- mons. Georgia had three royal governors. Gover- nor Wright was the most important of these, being governor during the troublous times of the Revolu- tion. In 1758 the Episcopal Church was established in the province. The territory of the colony was en- larged in 1763 by a royal proclamation fixing the southern boundary at the St. Mary's River. Additional Reading: Governor Wright: Northen, W. J., Men of Mark in Georgia, I, 361-365 (A. B. Caldwell, Adanta, Ga.). CHAPTER VIII MATERIAL DEVELOPMENT, 1752-1776 Revival of the Colony after 1750 The repeal of the restrictions on land tenure and slavery in 1750 vs^as the signal for a tide of immigra- tion to Georgia. People had been leaving for a number of years, usually going to South Carolina, w^here the more liberal policy of the government held out larger hopes of prosperity. There w^ere, in 1753, a iew more than 2,000 w^hite inhabitants in the colony, and a considerable number of these came after 1750. The movement of population w^as rapid. William Stephens, who vv^as holding over as Presi- dent until the new^ government could be installed, wrote that "People from all parts of his Majesty's dominions in America as well as from Germany and Great Britain are almost daily coming thither." We have four estimates of population during the period of the royal government. Arranged in tabular form, these figures show the rapid growth of the colony. Whites Negroes 1753 2,381 1,066 1760 6,000 3,578 1 766 9,900 7,800 1772 18,000 15,000 90 History of Georgia 91 The whites increased nearly 700 per cent in twenty years, while the slaves increased much more rapidly. These immigrants usually came as individuals, but sometimes entire colonies migrated to Georgia. The most important case of this sort was the Dorchester colony. The ancestors of these people were New England Puritans who a half century before had moved to South Carolina and built a town which they named Dorchester. Their lands had finally be- come impoverished, and hearing good reports of Georgia, they applied for and received a grant for about 32,000 acres of land on the Midway River, in what is now Liberty County.^ The town of Sun- bury, built by the Dorchester people, was for a number of years second only to Savannah in com- mercial importance. It took several years for the Dorchester community to wind up their affairs and effect the removal to Georgia. After all had come, the new settlement contained about three hundred and fifty whites and fifteen hundred slaves. As the new- comers were a prosperous, well-to-do people of the strong New England stock they were a welcome addition to Georgia. Some of our most important citizens were members of the Midway settlement; among others, Lyman Hall, one of the signers of the Declaration of Independence. ^ Stacy, James, History of the Midiuay Congregational Church, Liberty County, Georgia. Contains list of original settlers. 92 History of Georgia Small Farms under the Trustees It will be recalled that under the rule of the Trustees immigrants who came at the expense of the Trust were given only fifty acres of land, and laws were passed to prevent the consolidation of these small holdings. The idea was to create a permanent body of small farmers, who should do their own work, slavery being prohibited. The result was that in so far as Georgia was developed at all prior to 1752, the work had been done by small white farmers, working their own land. There were, it is true, a few men of means in the colony who had five hundred acre tracts in consideration of having brought in indented servants, but they were far from being the leading element numerically. The fact is that during the first twenty years of the colony, Georgia life resembled that of New Eng- land. The people were not widely scattered over a great area of land, holding thousands of acres in each great plantation, as was the case in the other southern colonies, but lived in compact village communities of farmers, who cultivated the lands lying about their small towns. Coming of Large Plantations With the removal of the restrictions as to the acre- age one man might have and with the introduction of slavery, the artificial equality under which the colonists lived disappeared. Men of means began to History of Georgia 93 acquire large tracts of land and develop rice planta- tions with slave labor. As a rule, the land acquired by the planter element was land hitherto unculti- vated, as there was an abundance. Many small farm- ers, however, to whom land had been given in desir- able places, sold out their farms and moved to the interior or became laborers. An instance of this sort is the case of Abercorn village. This hamlet was originally in the hands of German Lutherans, but we are told that ^'The faithful but poor brethren could not cultivate nor continue to hold them (their farms), and were compelled to sell them to an Eng- lishman in Savannah, who was likewise forced to re-sell them to Mr. Knox, who keeps a large number of negroes." Such was probably the fate of other villages of small white farmers. With the growth of large rice plantations, worked by overseers and negro slaves, the tendency was for the blacks to out- number the whites in the rural districts, so that by 1773 there were fifteen thousand negroes to eighteen thousand whites, many of these whites, however, living in the towns. Interesting records have been handed down of the land and slave possessions of some of the great rice planters. James Habersham in 1765 was farming on a large enough scale to make seven hundred barrels of rice. In 1772 he owned one hundred and ninety- eight slaves, from whose labor he realized an annual income of about ten thousand dollars. His three 94 History of Georgia plantations lay on the Ogeechee River. He found it impossible on account of health conditions to live on his plantations, and, as he had other business in Savannah, entrusted the management of his estate to a hired overseer. _., ..-^ ^^^^ -^^ ifa W^% % Wr 1 -mwH , - *^ ■ Ipili mMa' ^■H A Rice Plantation, Flooded. From Coman's "Industrial History of the United States." (McMillan.) Governor James Wright was another large-scale planter. In 1771 on his eleven plantations five hundred and twenty-three slaves were used, an average of twenty to the place. One John Graham owned 26,578 acres in 1771 and 228 slaves. At no subsequent period in Georgia history could indi- viduals be found who conducted planting operations on a larger scale than did these early rice growers. History of Georgia 95 Social Classes With the appearance of the great planter it was inevitable that Georgia society should lose its former character. Relatively few men had the means to advance from the small farmer class to the ranks of the planters. A slave in 1772 cost two hundred and fifty dollars. Much expense was involved in pur- chasing a force of laborers and in clearing and im- proving land for rice culture. Hence the majority of Georgians remained in the small farmer class, many of them moved into the backwoods region of the coast and engaged in grazing, poultry raising and farming on a small scale. With wealth and leisure, education and culture increased among the planter element. Sons were often sent to Harvard, or Princeton, or to Europe, for their training, while governesses were employed for the girls. Savannah became quite a fashionable and wealthy town, as it was the custom of the planters to live there most of the year. Control of Slaves South Carolmians had had a great deal of trouble with slave insurrections, so that when slavery was legalized in Georgia, the Assembly drew up a code of laws for the control of the negroes. The severity of the laws, which were copied from those of South Carolina, indicates the danger which slavery was be- lieved to be to the peace of the colony. No slave 96 History of Georgia was allowed to leave the plantation without a written permit, and if caught without such permit could be whipped; the willful burning or destroying of a stack of rice, corn or other grain, or maliciously set- ting fire to a tar-kiln, barrel of pitch, tar, turpentine or resin, was punishable by death. Death was like- wise the penalty for killing a white person, attempt- ing to raise an insurrection or to entice a fellow slave to run away. Slaves were prohibited from carrying weapons unless with the written consent of the owner, and under no circumstances between Saturday even- ing and Monday morning. Anyone selling beer or whiskey to a slave was liable to a fine. There were provisions in the law looking to the protection of the slave. It was made illegal to work slaves on the Sabbath, works of absolute necessity and domestic service being excepted. Slaves might not be worked longer than sixteen hours a day, and a system of fines was provided for failure to furnish sufficient food and clothing. It was illegal to teach slaves to write, though this law seems not to have been observed. Every owner of twenty slaves was required to have one white servant capable of bearing arms. Owners of fifty were to have two white servants, and an additional white servant for every additional twenty-five slaves. There was a marked spirit of consideration on the part of slave owners. James Habersham was deeply concerned for the spiritual and physical welfare of History of Georgia 97 his servants. He maintained a school for them on one of his plantations. One of the planters, a Mr. Knox, sent out from England two missionaries to christianize his slaves. Agriculture and other Industries Rice production was the leading agricultural inter- est of the province. The river banks and marshes were devoted to this crop. Other commodities of which a surplus for export was made were corn, lumber, shingles, naval stores, cattle and horses. In- dustry was more diversified prior to the Revolution that after the rise of the cotton industry. It is true that the exports were small, but when it is remem- bered that only a few years before scores of ship- loads of food were annually brought to Georgia, it is an evidence of great progress that the people were feeding themselves and had something left for sale. Silk and Wine The original scheme of the Trustees looked to the production of silk and wine as the prime industries of Georgia. Governor Wright in a report of 1768^ gave several reasons why the silk industry was un- profitable. It seems that the worms rapidly degenerated in the Georgia climate, but that, above all, the population was too sparse and labor too dear. ^ Jones, C. C, History of Georgia, II, pp. 75-78. 98 History of Georgia In fact, the only thing that kept up the industry was the bounty allowed by the English government. Great Britain was anxious to become independent of the southern European countries in this regard, and did everything possible to encourage silk production in Georgia. The government bought all the raw silk, bore the expense of preparing it for the market and of shipping it to England, besides paying a price of one shilling, six pence, per pound, though the market price was never more than one shilling and often was as low as six pence. The bounties paid by the government in these enhanced prices amounted in 1768 to twenty-five hundred dollars. Heavy frosts in 1769 and a reduction in the government price practically killed the business. In 1772 the opera- tions of the filature in Savannah were suspended. The experience of the colonists in grape culture was quite as unhappy. These industries are better suited to long settled countries, where the soil is highly improved and labor skilled and cheap. In abandoning them for the heavier crops, such as rice and corn, Georgians were simply adapting their agriculture to the existing physical conditions. Commerce With the production of a surplus above the need of home consumption, commercial operations began. In the eighteen years of the Trust only one vessel filled with Georgia products left the colony; in 1761, History of Georgia 99 45 vessels were dispatched with Georgia made com- modities. In 1772 the number had increased to i6i from Savannah and 56 from Sunbury, the total ton- nage being 12,124. The average value of the exports for five years preceding 1773 was $500,000. To England, deer skins, rice, indigo and naval stores were sent; to the West Indies, rice, corn, peas, lum- ber, shingles, cattle, horses, barreled beef and pork. The exports to Great Britain were about three-fifths of the whole in value. From England the colonists received shoes, hats and other wearing apparel, iron- ware, tea and paper. From the West Indies, rum and sugar. Flour, crackers and other foodstuffs came from the colonies further north. Summary After the repeal of the restrictions on land tenure and the prohibition of slavery, the economic life of Georgia underwent a complete change. Instead of there being a very small white population of farmers working little farms with their own hands, there speedily grew up great plantations using negro slaves to do the work. The population increased very rapidly, and every year the proportion of negroes to whites became larger. The most fertile parts of the coast, i. e., the river banks and the marshes, were soon transformed from wilderness to rice plantations. The owners of these plantations did not live on them, but stayed most of the time in Savannah, Sunbury 100 History of Georgia and other towns. A harsh slave code was drawn up, but in practice much consideration was shown to the slaves. Within twenty years of the change from free to slave labor, Georgia was exporting a half million dollars' worth of agricultural products, and was well on the way to become a great and thriving province when the Revolutionary War came to inter- rupt the development. CHAPTER IX THE REVOLUTION, 1774-1778 The American Revolution was a protest against the colonial system of the English government. It was a struggle on the part of the colonists not only to get the control of their own internal affairs, such as the right to vote taxes, but also to obtain freedom from the interference of the mother country in their com- mercial activities. Colonial Trade The colonies in the eighteenth century were re- garded by Great Britain simply as markets for manu- factured articles and as sources of raw materials. Commerce was hampered by a number of irritating laws intended to secure to English merchants a 'monopoly of trade with the colonies. Parliament re- quired that certain products of America should be sold only to England or to some British colony. The list-'of such products included tobacco, cotton, silk, coffee, indigo, naval stores, skins, sugar and rice, though the last three were sometimes allowed to be sent to foreign countries. For instance, in 1735 Georgia was given permission to export rice directly to any port south of Cape Finisterre. On the other 101 102 History of Georgia hand, no manufactured articles might be imported into America from nations other than the English, without the payment of heavy duties, nor were the colonists themselves permitted to establish any manu- facturing enterprise which came into conflict with English manufacturers. Smuggling In spite of these laws, for many years the colonies traded with the French and Spanish West Indies. This illegal traffic, known as smuggling, was very profitable and the laws were disregarded with so little protest from the government that the American merchants regarded them as practically repealed. The reason why the smuggling was winked at by English ministers was that Great Britain was en- , gaged in foreign wars for many years and did not want to irritate the colonists by enforcing the laws. But in 1764, at the close of the French and Indian War, measures were taken to break up the commerce between the colonies and the possessions of France and Spain in the New World. This sudden enforce- ment of laws which had become almost obsolete threatened to ruin the merchants of the colonies, and was one of the powerful influences making for revolution. Question of Taxation On the political side, the Revolution was due to the determination of the colonists to control their own History of Georgia 103 government. In coming to America the colonists claimed that they had not abandoned but had brought with them the liberties of Englishmen, such as the right to make their own laws, the right to trial by jury and the right to vote their own taxes. They were especially sensitive about taxation, because they knew that for centuries Englishmen had fought arbitrary kings over this very question. They knew there could be no local self-government without con- trol over the purse strings. The Stamp Act, 1765 The matter of taxation became acute at the close of the French and Indian War. France had been defeated and had surrendered to England all her territory east of the Mississippi. But the English government believed France would make an effort to reconquer the lost lands, and to prevent this British statesmen determined to establish a small standing army in the colonies. Several of the colonies had not responded liberally to appeals for assistance dur- ing the last war and it was feared that they would not cooperate any better in the future. Now the national debt of Great Britain had been enormously increased by the period of wars through which she had gone, and as the standing army was intended to protect the colonists, it was thought fair to require them to pay part of the expense. Hence, in 1765, Parliament passed what was known as the Stamp Act. It re- 104 History of Georgia quired the colonists to purchase stamps, similar to Ij postage stamps, and affix them to newspapers and any legal documents they might have occasion to draw up. It was estimated that these stamps would pro- duce a revenue sufficient to pay less than half of the expense of the standing army, the balance to be paid by Parliamentary appropriation. Resistance of the Colonists The colonists resented this tax and refused to pay it on the ground that Parliament had no right to levy a tax of this sort, as the colonists were not directly represented in Parliament. When a vessel, the Speedwell, arrived at Savannah, in December, 1765, bringing a stamp agent and a quantity of stamps, about six hundred Georgians gathered and told the governor that unless the stamps were removed from Savannah they would attack his house and destroy them. Governor Wright wisely had the stamps re- placed on the Speedwell. Similar outbreaks occurred in the other colonies. Parliament, therefore, repealed the Stamp Act, but the seed of trouble had been sown. Quarrels and misunderstandings fol- lowed for ten years, until finally the colonies decided to fight for separation from England. In ]J2J^t\t- gates from twelve of the colonies met in Philadelphia to make plans for united action. This body was known as the First Continental Congress. History of Georgia 105 Division in Sentiment in Georgia Georgia was not represented at the First Con- tinental Congress. The majority of Georgians had not decided at that time what course of action ought to be taken. There was a very sharp difference of opinion as to the necessity of revolution, and it has been estimated that nearly half of the Georgia people remained faithful to the king. It is important to understand the causes of this division in sentiment. The Weakness of the Colony Georgia was by far the youngest of the thirteen colonies, having been settled more than a hundred years after Virginia and Massachusetts. As yet in her infancy, the province was scarcely strong enough, in the opinion of many, for independence. The first twenty years were on the whole unsuccessful, and while there had been notable progress since the resignation of the Trustees, Georgia was still insigni- ficant in population when compared w^ith the other colonies. Georgia contained 33,000 inhabitants in 1773; Virginia, 400,000; North Carolina, 230,000, and South Carolina, 140,000. The fighting strength of the colony was almost negligible — according to the governor, only 2,828 able-bodied soldiers. In addition to the danger of slave insurrection, Georgia was in greater danger from Indian attack than any other colony, by reason of her position on the southern frontier. The surrounding tribes had 106 History of Georgia 10,000 gunmen in 1773, and English agents had secured their support in the usual way through presents. These were very real menaces to the safety of Georgians, and, in addition, there was at St. Augus- tine a strong British force, against whose advance into Georgia little resistance could be made. Georgia received a good deal of abuse during the early days of the war on account of her backwardness in embrac- ing the revolutionary cause. Captain Hugh McCall, the first Georgia historian of the war, says: ^'The charge of inactivity vanishes when the sword and hatchet are held over the heads of the actors to compell them to lie still." The Older Colonists Royalist in Sentiment Aside from these prudential reasons, other factors entered into the hesitation of Georgians. The men of weight in politics, society and business, were, as a rule, the older colonists, some of whom had been personal friends of Oglethorpe, and had passed through all the earlier vicissitudes of the colony. They remembered with lively feelings of gratitude the assistance Parliament had extended them in the dark days of the rule of the Trustees. Not less than half a million dollars had been appropriated for the colony by Parliament, aside from large individual donations. No other colony had been assisted in the same way. While not always approving Parlia- History of Georgia 107 mentary acts touching trade relations, the older colonists felt that it would be unpardonable treason to revolt against King George III. Such important men as James Habersham, Noble Jones and others had been so closely associated with the government that rebellion was with them out of the question. Attitude of the Younger Men The younger colonists had, however, no personal recollections of these matters. They were irresistibly drawn into the struggle, fired by the example of the other colonies and dreaming of making an inde- pendent nation in the New World. This unfortunate division extended even to the point of separating families. James Habersham's three sons, James, Joseph, and John, were all on the American side, as was Noble Wymberley Jones, son of Noble Jones. First Revolutionary Meeting in Georgia The royalist element in Georgia was ably led by Governor James Wright. He was a just and popular man and his influence kept many Georgians from joining the revolutionists. In spite of his efforts, however, a committee of patriots. Noble Wymberley Jones, ^ Archibald Bulloch, John Houston and John ^ Noble Wymberley Jones, son of Oglethorpe's friend, Noble Jones, was born in England in 1723. He was, therefore, fifty-one years of age at the beginning of the War. He was a physician by profession. During all the preliminary agitation, before the Revo- 108 History of Georgia Walton, published a call for a meeting to be held on July 27th to discuss the situation. Communications were read from revolutionary committees in the other colonies. As some of the parishes were not repre- sented, it was decided to adjourn until August loth. Governor Wright issued a proclamation against '^seditious meetings," but the meeting was held and spirited resolutions adopted condemning the coercive acts that Parliament had passed to punish Massa- chusetts. A committee of royalists, of which James Habersham, Sr., and Noble Jones were members, published in the Savannah Gazette a criticism of the patriot assembly's acts, and presently a meeting was called of all those who favored the royalist cause. About a third of the inhabitants in and near Savan- nah attended, and resolutions against agitation were passed. First Provincial Congress a Failure The patriots who met on August loth had not thought it wise to send a delegate to the First Con- lution had become popular, he worked hard for the American cause, serving on all the Committees and being an active member of the various Provincial Congresses. He w^as probably respon- sible to a larger degree than any other individual for the direction of affairs to the time of the fall of Savannah, in 1778. After that event, Dr. Jones went to Charleston, where he was cap- tured and sent to St. Augustine. After the war, he returned to Savannah and resumed the practice of medicine. At seventy-two years of age, he presided over the Constitutional Convention of 1795. He died ten years later. History of Georgia 109 Noble Wimberley Jones. From an engramng lent by Mr. W. J. DeRenne. tinental Congress, since, on account of the lack of harmony in the colony, no one could claim to repre- sent the will of the colony. In January, 1775, a 110 History of Georgia Provincial Congress was convened at Savannah, but only five of the twelve parishes sent representatives. This shows how strong the royalist feeling was. The Congress was, of course, unable to do anything to bind the colony, though in spite of the fact that they represented only a minority, they appointed dele- gates to the Continental Congress. The failure of this effort to put Georgia in line with the other colonies was very humiliating to the patriots. The other colonies could not understand the local troubles, and South Carolina had resolved to have no inter- course with Georgia. The delegates named to pre- sent themselves to the Continental Congress declined, under the circumstances, to serve, but wrote a letter to the President of the Congress, beginning: ^'The unworthy part which the Province of Georgia has acted in the great and general contest leaves room to expect little less than the censure or even indigna- tion of every virtuous man in America." These delegates were Noble Wymberley Jones, Archibald Bulloch^ and John Houston. ^Archibald Bulloch was born In South Carolina, In 1730. Moving to Georgia with his father In 1750, he soon entered the practice of law. He espoused the revolutionary cause, and in 1776 was president of the successful second Provincial Congress, and was by that body chosen "President and Commander-in-Chief of Georgia." He was thus the first republican head of our State. He would have signed the Declaration of Independence, but was kept at home by his duties as President. He died In 1777, shortly after the beginning of actual hostilities. He gave promise of a career of great usefulness and distinction. History of Georgia 111 Battle of Lexington Many Georgians who were hesitating were won over to the side of the revolutionists after the Battle of Lexington. As long as there was a chance for peace, they were opposed to encouraging rebellion, but when a definite choice had to be made, they were unwilling to fight against their fellow Americans. When the news reached Georgia that fighting had actually begun, a number of men broke into the powder magazine in Savannah and took from it six hundred barrels of powder. The leaders in this affair were Noble W. Jones, Joseph Habersham, Edward Telfair and John Milledge. All of these men became prominent. Edward Telfair and John Milledge were afterwards governors of the State, and Joseph Habersham served as Speaker of the House of Rep- resentatives. Second Provincial Congress In July, 1775, a second Provincial Congress was summoned. This time every parish was represented. This Congress restored Georgia to the good favor of the other colonies, and elected as delegates to the Continental Congress John Houston,^ Archibald ^ John Houston was born in what Is now Burke County, in 1744. From the first he took an active part in fomenting resist- ance to Great Britain. In 1778, he was elected Governor of Georgia. In 1784, he was again elected to the governor's chair, and it was during his second term that the Charter of the Uni- versity of Georgia was granted. He died in 1796. 112 History of Georgia Bulloch, the Reverend Mr. Zubly, Noble W. Jones and Lyman Hall. Fall of the Royalist Government Feeling that at last a majority of the people were with them, the leaders proceeded to wrest control Lyman Hall. From an engraving lent by Mr. W. J. DeRenne. of affairs from the royalists. In August, 1775, the militia was purged of royalist officers; the port of Savannah was closed to British vessels, and in December all the courts were taken over by a Council of Safety. This Council was a body of about fifteen History of Georgia 113 leading republicans, created by a public meeting held at Savannah in June, 1775. To complete the destruction of the royalist government, in January, 1776, Governor Wright was arrested by Major Joseph Habersham. He was confined to his house under guard, but in a few weeks escaped to one of the king's vessels in the harbor. Declaration of Independence The Provincial Congress met again in January, 1776, and chose Lyman HalP, Archibald Bulloch, John Houston, Button Gwinnett and George Walton as delegates to the Continental Congress. Bulloch and Houston were unable to attend the Congress, but the other three delegates went to Philadelphia and signed the Declaration of Independence on July 4th, 1776. Summary The colonies were actuated by two motives in rebelling against Great Britain. One was the desire ^ Lyman Hall was born at Wallfngford, Connecticut, in 1724. Being graduated from Yale in 1747, he joined his co-religionists at Dorchester, S. C, and when they moved to Georgia, came with them and settled on the Midway River in St. John's Parish. This parish was strongly in favor of the revolution from the first, and many of the leaders of the movement came from that settlement. Its name of Liberty County perpetuates the spirit of the Inhabi- tants. When Georgia declined in January, 1775, to send delegates to the Continental Congress, Lyman Hall went as an independ- ent delegate from St. John's Parish. He became Governor of Georgia in 1783, and died in 1 790. 114 History of Georgia to get rid of artificial restrictions on their trade; the other to secure a larger measure of local self-govern- ment. Their resistance to the Stamp Act was not due to a feeling that the tax was burdensome, but to unwillingness to pay a tax which their own Assem- blies had not voted. The revolutionarv movement in Georgia was almost wholly a sympathetic one. Georgia w^as not a commercial colony and did not, therefore, feel greatly hampered by the trade regula- tions; and there had been very few conflicts between the local assembly and the English government. Conscious of no ill treatment, the older colonists, some of whom had been personal friends of Ogle- thorpe and remembered the assistance given the colony during the early years, refused to join the patriotic cause. The younger men, however, were fired by the example of the patriots in the other colonies and ardently joined the revolutionary party. The result was that the war in Georgia was peculiarly terrible, approaching at times civil war. The Battle of Lexington turned many waverers to the patriot cause, so that the revolutionists were able to obtain control of the colony early in 1776. Additional Reading: Causes of the Revolution : Evans, L. B., Essential Facts of American History, pp. 174-187. Biographical Sketches of N. W. Jones, Archibald Bulloch, Lyman Hall, and others mentioned in the chapter: Northern, W. J., Men of Mark in Georgia, I. CHAPTER X THE REVOLUTION, 1778-1783 Campaigns in South Georgia The military activity of the Province of Georgia was directed against Florida in the early phase of the war. It will be remembered that Florida had been ceded to Great Britain in 1763. St. Augustine had been strongly fortified and again became a menace to the safety of Georgia, just as it was during the Spanish War. The southern border of the colony was constantly harried by marauding bands of Brit- ish, Indians and royalists. Three separate expedi- tions were organized against St. Augustine, but, as was the case when Oglethorpe tried to take the city, all of the attempts ended in failure. Disputes among the commanders, inadequate preparations and sick- ness prevented any of these invasions from getting even as near St. Augustine as the point Oglethorpe had reached. Fall of Savannah In 1778 the British decided to transfer the theatre of the war to the South and make an efifort to secure control over Georgia and the Carolinas. In pursu- ance of this plan. Colonel Archibald Campbell sailed 115 116 History of Georgia from New York with a heavy force to attack Savan- nah. General Augustine Prevost, Commander of the British army in Florida, sent two forces to cooperate with Campbell, one under Lieutenant- Colonel Mark Prevost by land, the other under Colonel Fuser, by water. The two were ordered to join their forces at Sunbury/ Lieutenant-Colonel Prevost entered Georgia on November 19th, 1778, taking captive all men found on plantations and plundering the people of every article of value. Re- sistance was offered near Midway Meeting-House, in Liberty County, by Colonel White, General Screven and Major James Jackson. General Screven was killed, and the small force of Georgians was compelled to retreat. Such vigorous preparations for defense were made at Ogeechee Ferry, however, that Prevost decided to return to Florida. Colonel Fuser, coming by water, did not arrive on time, and Prevost did not feel strong enough to proceed without him. Having desolated the region about Midway, Prevost turned his face southward. Late In November Fuser reached Sunbury, but not finding Prevost, and being unwilling to attack the place without assistance, returned to the St. John's River. The failure of these expeditions gave Georgia a short breathing spell. But on December 6th news reached Savannah that Campbell's fleet was on the way from New ^ See map, p. 50. History of Gcorf^'ia 117 York, and that General Prevost was marching from Florida. Campbell reached the Savannah River on December 27th, with 2,000 regulars. Major-General Howe, commander of the American forces in the South, was encamped near Savannah, awaiting reinforcements. His entire force numbered only 672 raw militiamen. He held a council of war and asked his officers whether it would be advisable to abandon Savannah or resist the attack. He was advised to stand by the city to the last. General Howe was not a capable commander. He did not choose a good position, and left several stragetic points unde- fended. He was especially culpable in not having defended a private way by which his right could be turned, though informed of the path by Colonel George Walton. This path was revealed to Camp- bell, who immediately saw its importance. He sent a force of infantry by this path and was able on December 29th to attack Howe both in front and in the rear. Completely defeated, the small American army retreated up the Savannah and crossed into South Carolina. The American loss was eighty- three killed and drowned; while thirty-eight officers and more than four hundred men were captured. The British lost only three men killed and ten wounded. For the conduct of this engagement General Howe was court-martialed, and, though acquitted, his military reputation was never recovered. 118 History of Georgia I Entering the town of Savannah, the British fear- fully abused all patriots, robbing, insulting and im- prisoning those who would not join the British side. British Conquest of North Georgia Leaving a garrison in Savannah, Campbell marched up the Savannah and took Ebenezer on January 2, 1779. Many Georgians, oppressed in every way, returned to their allegiance rather than sufifer the destruction of their property, if not the loss of their lives. About this time General Prevost arrived at Sunbury from St. Augustine, bringing some 2,000 men. The town was taken on January loth. Prevost then took command of all British forces in Georgia. Augusta was then the only town remaining in the possession of the Americans. About the middle of January, Colonel Campbell sent a thousand men to take the town. Ineffectual resistance was offered by small forces under Colonels John Twiggs, Ben- jamin and William Few and General Elbert; and when the British reached Augusta, the American commander, Brigadier-General Williamson, sur- rendered without waiting for an attack. Guerrilla War Georgia was now completely in the hands of the enemy. After the fall of Augusta, the people of North Georgia fled towards South Carolina, taking History of Georgia 119 all portable effects. For some time a sort of guer- rilla warfare was kept up between more or less inde- pendent bands of patriots and the "Tories," as the Americans who fought in the British army were called. On the American side were to be found Colonels Pickens, John Dooly, Elijah Clarke, John Twiggs, Captain McCall and others. The Battle of Kettle Creek in February was the most important engagement, a substantial victory for the Americans. In this battle the British force was 600 men, the American 400. This success encouraged many Georgians to return to the state; troops began to gather, the Tories in upper Georgia were routed, and Campbell decided to abandon Augusta. Battle of Brier Creek In March, 1779, General Benjamin Lincoln, who had succeeded Howe as commander of the Southern Department, determined to move to the assistance of Georgia. About 8,000 men were under his com- mand. The patriot General Ash, with about 2,300 men, was encamped at the confluence of Brier Creek and the Savannah River. At this poirlt General Lincoln arranged to concentrate all available troops and begin operations to relieve Georgia. But Gen- eral Ash had injudiciously located his camp, had taken no precautions to watch the enemy, and had weakened his command by sending out too many detachments. Before Lincoln reached him, he was 120 History of Georgia ^H m attacked and completely defeated by Colonel Prevost. This was an unfortunate afifair, as many Americans who had begun to pluck up their spirits again | despaired of ultimate success, and the projected at- tempt to recover Georgia had to be abandoned. Many Georgians and Carolinians joined the British side. French and Americans Attack Savannah The French king, who had suffered so many re- verses at the hands of England, assisted the Ameri- cans in their fight for independence. A fleet was sent over under the command of Count d'Estaing! In 1779, General Lincoln and d'Estaing made a joint attack on Savannah. Lincoln marched frdm South Carolina with 2,100 men. His advance guard was led by General Lachlan Mcintosh, a Georgian, and Count Pulaski, a Polish nobleman. The force of Count d'Estaing numbered 4,500 men. Savannah was defended by 2,500 British and Tories. The forces of Lincoln and d'Estaing were joined on Sep- tember i6th, 1779. The French general had un- wisely on the day before granted a truce of twenty- four hours. Had he attacked at once the British could not have defended the city, as their cannon were not mounted. In reply to d'Estaing's note demanding the surrender of the place, Prevost had asked for twenty-four hours, ostensibly to consider the matter, really to mount the cannon. During the History of Georgia 121 twenty-four hour truce the cannon were put in posi- tion and a considerable reinforcement under Colonel Maitland reached the town. After besieging the city for about three weeks, a grand assault was made on October 9th. The French were formed into three columns, led respectively by Count d'Estaing, Colonel de Steding and the Vis- count de Noailles. The Americans were in two columns, one led by Colonel Laurens of South Caro- lina, the other by General Mcintosh. General Lincoln, by virtue of his rank, commanded the reserve; and the cavalry was commanded by Count Pulaski. General Isaac Huger, with a force of 500 men opened the attack on the extreme left — this movement being a feint to conceal the main attack. The golumns then hurled themselves against the breastvMrks with conspicuous dash and bravery, but to no pm^ose. The British were skillfully directed and their works were too strongly constructed to be taken by the attacking armies. On the failure of the assault, Lincoln led his force to South Carolina, and d'Estaing sailed away. The American loss was 312; the French 821. The British lost 40 killed, 63 wounded, four missing and 48 by desertion. Desperate Condition of the Patriots The condition of the republicans in Georgia was now very distressing. The fall of Charleston, in May, 1780, added to the general sense of insecurity. 122 History of Georgia Several brave spirits, Twiggs, Clarke, Dooly, Few, Jackson and others kept together small bands of Georgians in the northern part of the state, protect- ing the inhabitants as best they could from the Indians and Tories. Of this sort of warfare, our great Georgia historian, Charles C. Jones, says: ^'Merciless was the war waged between Royalists and Republicans. The former, inflamed with hatred and eager for rapine, spared neither age nor sex. Ruin marked their footsteps, and their presence was a signal for theft, torture, murder and crimes without a name. Revenge and retaliation prompted the Re- publicans to many bloody deeds which can scarcely be excused even in a defensive war." Turning of the Tide By the spring of 178 1 matters began to look brighter for the American cause. Several engage- ments had been won in North and South Carolina, notably at Cowpens in the latter state. General Nathanael Greene had succeeded General Lincoln as commander of the Southern Department. In April he ordered General Pickens and Lieutenant- Colonel Lee, known as Light Horse Harry Lee, to march on to Augusta. The place was already being invested by forces under James Jackson and Elijah Clarke. The town surrendered on June 5, 1781, and" Major Jackson was placed in charge of the fort. The capture of Augusta placed the northern History of Georgia 123 counties of Georgia in the hands of the Republicans. The following January General Anthony Wayne came to Georgia to take command. The British were gradually forced southward, fort after fort was taken, the enemy was eventually shut up in Savan- nah, and the town surrounded. Supplies were cut off and a regular siege was begun. This was the situa- tion of affairs when news of the cessation of the war came. Governor Wright notified General Wayne that peace had been made; terms of surrender were agreed upon, and Savannah was evacuated on July nth, 1782, the keys of the city being delivered to James Jackson. Political Affairs During the War Mention has already been made of the Council of Safety, which was a committee of revolutionists formed in June, 1775. It was a sort of executive head of the revolutionary movement until a regular government could be devised. This Council purged the militia of royalists, raised troops, conducted the courts and took over the duties formerly exercised by Governor Wright. In April, 1776, a Provincial Congress of delegates from the several parishes prepared a temporary con- stitution. This constitution provided for a ^'President and Commander-in-Chief," to be elected by the Provincial Congress, for six months. The Council of Safety was continued, and was made to consist of 124 History of Georgia thirteen persons, in addition to the five delegates to the Continental Congress. The President was re- quired to consult this Council and follow its advice in all official matters. Archibald Bulloch was the first President and Commander-in-Chief. On his death Button Gwinnett^ was appointed by the Coun- cil to fill the position until a regular election could be made by the Provincial Congress. The First Constitution of Georgia, 1777 After the Declaration of Independence a Consti- tution was adopted, the first constitution of Georgia as a sovereign State. When the authority of the British government was cast ofT, it became necessary for the people themselves to draw up a document, containing the form of government and the laws ^Button Gwinnett was born in England about 1732. As a young man he emigrated to South Carolina, but soon moved over into Georgia. For a short while he engaged in mercantile affairs in Savannah, but eventually became a farmer in St. John's Par- ish. Espousing the popular cause, he was made a member of the Provincial Congress in 1776 and was named a delegate to the Continental Congress the same year. On the death of Archibald Bulloch in 1777, Gwinnett became President and Commander-in- Chief of Georgia. He was a candidate for Governor at the first election held under the Constitution of 1777, but the Assembly passed him by and elected Treutlen. General Lachlan Mcin- tosh, with whom Gwinnett had had some differences, openly ex- pressed his pleasure at the result of the election. This angered Gwinnett and he challenged Mcintosh to a duel. Gwinnett was killed. General Mcintosh was indicted, tried, and acquitted, but Gwinnett's friends felt very bitterly over the affair and a serious division was caused in the Republican ranks. History of Georgia 12d Button Gwinnett. From an engraving lent by Mr. fV. J. DeRenne. 126 History of Georgl S[i(i under which they desired to live and be governed. The adopting of a constitution is the highest func- tion of a self-governing people. A republican form of government was created, with an elective leg"isla- ture and a governor and council. The Legislature The duty of law-making was entrusted to a legis- lature of one house, consisting of representatives annually elected by the people. Representation was distributed among the counties in accordance with their relative importance. The small counties of Glynn and Camden were given one representative each; the large county of Liberty had fourteen mem- bers, and each of the other counties ten. In addition to the county members, the town of Savannah was given four representatives, and Sunbury two. Rep- resentatives had to be not less than twenty-one years of age and possess two hundred and fifty acres of land or other property to the value of two hundred and fifty pounds. All male white inhabitants not less than twenty-one years of age who owned as much as ten pounds worth of property were permitted to vote. Mechanics were exempted from the property qualification. An interesting provision was the authorization of a fine for failure to vote. Governor and Council The executive function was placed in the hands of a governor and council, both being elected by the History of Georgia 127 assembly of representatives. The governor and coun- cil held office for one year. During the sessions of the assembly the members of the council were required to be present in order to suggest amend- ments to proposed laws, but the assembly might dis- regard such amendments. Both governor and coun- cil were thus under the control of the elected representatives of the people, whereas under the royal government the governor wielded practically autocratic power. Parishes Become Counties The twelve parishes of Georgia were made by this constitution into eight counties, called Wilkes, Rich- mond, Burke, Effingham, Chatham, Glynn, Camden and Liberty. Liberty County was so called on ac- count of the ardent revolutionary sentiment of the people of Sunbury and its neighborhood; the other names are those of distinguished Englishmen who took the part of the colonies in the various disputes leading up to the Revolution. Other Provisions of the Constitution The Constitution also guaranteed the right of habeas corpus, freedom of the press, religious tolera- tion and trial by jury. The legislature was required to establish in each county schools to be supported at the general expense of the state. 128 History of Georgia John Adam Treutlen John Adam Treutlen was elected governor under this constitution in May, 1777. He is, therefore, the first governor of Georgia as an independent state. On the fall of Savannah in 1778, Augusta was made the capital, and when Augusta was threatened, the seat of government was located at Heard's Fort, now Washington, in Wilkes County. As practically the entire state was then in the hands of the British, there was really no need for a formally organized government. Governor Wright, in the meantime, had reestablished the royal government at Savannah and continued to exercise his powers there until the final surrender of the city. There were thus two separate sets of officials in Georgia, one representing the people, the other the English king. When the British abandoned Augusta, in 1781, the capital was again removed to that town. An assembly was convened and Dr. Nathan Brownson was elected governor. At the election of 1782 John Martin became governor. During his administration the war closed, and Savannah again became the capital. Summary The main events of the Revolutionary War in Georgia are the two battles of Savannah. In both these engagements the Americans were defeated. The other two battles of importance were those at Kettle History of Georgia 125) Creek and Brier Creek, the former a victory for the revolutionists, the latter for the British and Tories. The war in Georgia was peculiarly cruel and destructive because Georgians were so evenly divided between allegiance to the British and to the Ameri- can cause. A constitutional form of government was put into operation as soon as the royalists were over- thrown. This government exercised authority wherever the patriots were dominant, but over most of the state from 1778 to 1782 the royalist govern- ment, represented by Governor Wright, was in control. A dditional R eadijig : Stories of interesting persons and incidents in Georgia during the war: Harris, Joel Chandler, Stories of Georgia, pp. 57-114, Robert Sallette, Paddy Carr, Nancy Hart, Elijah Clarke, James Jackson. CHAPTER XI GEORGIA ENTERS THE FEDERAL UNION, 1783-1789 The Articles of Confederation When the colonies threw off their allegiance to England, they became, in the words of the Declara- tion of Independence, "free and independent states,'' with no bond of union between them. Each was free to establish her own laws and form of government without considering the opinion of the other states. But realizing the strength of union, the colonies had banded together for the purpose of fighting Great Britain. The document which contained the form of government of the confederated states was known as the Articles of Confederation. Some of the states were so jealous of their independence that they hesi- tated a long time before entering into the union; indeed, it was only near the close of the Revolution, in 178 1, that all the states had accepted the Articles. Defects of the Confederacy The government instituted by the Articles of Con- federation proved hopelessly inadequate for a national life. All the powers given up by the indi- vidual states were lodged in the hands of a Congress. 130 History of Georgia 131 This Congress consisted of delegates from the several states and as each state was allowed one vote, tiny Rhode Island had as much weight as great Vir- ginia or Massachusetts. No important legislation could be enacted without the affirmative vote of nine of the thirteen states. Congress could levy no taxes, but was limited to calling on the states for contributions, each state reserving to itself the right to levy all taxes. Congress was wholly without power to compel the obedience of a state to the national law. Another fundamental weakness lay in the lack of Congressional control over commerce. Each state levied its own customs duties, and tariff wars among them were common. Under this weak government the states lived for several years after the close of the Revolution, and all the time the country was drifting towards bank- ruptcy and anarchy. A Stronger Form of Government Necessary The only remedy for these conditions lay in the creation of a new form of government, endowed with enough power to cope with the difficulties which confronted the nation. Accordingly, in May, 1787, a great convention of delegates from the states met in Philadelphia. The strongest minds in America were present, Washington, Franklin, Hamilton, Madison, Randolph and many others. Georgia elected as delegates William Pierce, William Hous- 132 History of Georgia ton, William Few, Abraham Baldwin, George Wal- ton and Nathaniel Pendleton. The last two did not attend, and only Few and Baldwin signed the Con- stitution. The Virginia delegates thought that the prime defect in the existing order of things lay in the fact that Congress represented not the people, but the states, and they therefore proposed the creation of a new congress to consist of a lower house, the mem- bers of which should be elected by the people direct- ly; and an upper house to be elected by the lower house. Had this measure been adopted it would have entirely destroyed the participation in the government of any state as such, and would have made the states into a centralized nation. The small states opposed the plan, because as representation in the lower house would be based on population, their influence would be as nothing when compared with that of the great states. First Compromise of the Constitution In order to protect the interests of the small states the "Connecticut Compromise" was introduced, by which it was proposed to have Congress consist of a lower house elected by the people, and an upper house in which the states should be equally repre- sented. The voting on this question was very excit- ing. Rhode Island having refused to take part in the convention, and New Hampshire having no dele- History of Georgia 133 gates present at the time the vote on the Compromise was taken, there were only eleven states represented. The vote of the states was taken in this way. The delegates from each state took a vote among them- selves to determine the attitude of that state, each state having one vote. The roll of states was then called, beginning with the oldest. Ten states had voted and the vote stood a tie when Georgia's turn came. It was a most critical moment. Georgia's vote was expected to be against the Connecticut Com- promise, as Georgia had consistently voted with the states desiring a strong national government. But one of the two Georgia delegates present, Abraham Baldwin^ was convinced that failure to accept the ^ Abraham Baldwin was one of the most conspicuous and val- uable men in the state during the early years of the Union. He came to Savannah at the close of the Revolutionary War, where he was admitted to the bar. He at once impressed himself on the people, and three months after his arrival was elected to the legislature from Chatham. Georgians are indebted to him not only for his invaluable services in the Constitutional Convention of 1787, but for his leadership in the establishment of the Uni- versity of Georgia. It is an undoubted fact that he first pro- posed the founding of the institution, and it is probable that he actually wrote the charter. At any rate, he became the first President, though he was only nominally at the head of the insti- tution, since it was sixteen years after the granting of the charter before the college was opened to students. Baldwin then resigned his nominal presidency in favor of Professor Meigs whose ser- vices Baldwin had secured. Both Baldwin and Meigs were gradu- ated from Yale. Baldwin became United States Senator In 1801, and was President pro tempore of the Senate for two years. 134 History of Georgia Compromise might mean the disruption of the con- vention. He therefore refused to follow William Few in voting against the Compromise, and in this way divided the vote of Georgia. The historian, John Fiske, has paid this tribute to Baldwin's action: "It was Abraham Baldwin, a native of Connecticut and lately a tutor in Yale College, a recent emigrant to Georgia, who thus divided the vote of that state, and prevented a decision which would in all proba- bility have broken up the convention. His state was the last to vote, and the house was hushed in anxious expectation, when this brave and wise young man yielded his private conviction to what he saw to be the paramount necessity of keeping the convention together. All honor to his memory!'" The principle of the Compromise was adopted some days later. In casting her vote with the large states, however, on many disputed questions the delegates from Georgia appear to have had the backing of her people. The explanation of this fact is that with the large extent of our territory, Georgians felt that in time the state would take rank with the great states. The Second Compromise The adoption of the Connecticut Compromise was the most important act performed by the convention, ^ Fiske, John, Critical Period of American History, p. 251. History of Georgia 135 but much remained to be done. The first struggle was between the large and small states. The second was between the slave and free states. In apportion- ing, according to population, the number of repre- sentatives of the several states in the lower house of Congress, the free states were unwilling that the slaves in the South should be counted. They claimed that negroes were property, not persons, while the Southern delegates insisted that the negroes should be reckoned as part of the population. A similar question had arisen during the war. Money for the army had been raised by requisition on the states in proportion to their population. At that time the North had maintained that the slaves were persons, and that the South's pro rata of money should be reckoned on the whole population, white and black. The South on the other hand had claimed that slaves were property only and not persons. It is clear that self-interest colored the views of both sections at both times. The dispute had been settled by counting a slave as three-fifths of a person in estimating the population for purposes of taxation; and now, in 1787, this former compromise was adopted; so that until the Civil War, in estimating the number of representatives from the South in Congress, the negroes helped to swell the Southern representation and gave her a disproportionate voice in the govern- ment of the country. 136 Histoiy of Georgia The Third Compromise The third compromise of the Constitution involved congressional control over commerce and the aboli- tion of the slave trade. All the states except South Carolina and Georgia desired to prohibit the im- portation of any more negroes from Africa; the New England states were very anxious to give Congress control over commerce. The South, opposed to mak- ing an unreserved surrender in this matter, advocated requiring a two-thirds vote of both houses before any measure affecting commerce should become law. They feared that the New England States would get a monopoly of the carrying trade and impose ruin- ous freight rates for transporting their rice and indigo to Europe; as well as enact tariff legislation hostile to the interests of purely agricultural states. Here was good material for a compromise. New Hampshire, Massachusetts and Connecticut voted to prolong the slave trade for twenty years, and Georgia and South Carolina supported Congressional control over commerce. Only the details now remained to be worked out, the three great questions having been settled by com- promise. Later In the year, the Federal Constitution was placed before the people of the states for adop- tion or rejection. Georgia, on January 2, 1788, In a convention at Augusta, ratified the Instrument, be- ing the fourth state so to do. History of Georiria 137 New State Constitution, 1789 Constitutional conventions met in Georgia in 1788 and 1789 for the purpose of making a new constitu- tion that would harmonize with the Federal Consti- tution. The constitution of 1777 had been hastily made and was considered unsatisfactory. Its pro- visions were drawn up while the people were yet strongly under the influence of colonial ideas. The new constitution of 1789 was a more systematic docu- ment and more democratic in its tendencies. The governor's council established in 1777 was dropped and a second house called the Senate added to the legislature, to consist of one member from each county, elected by popular vote. The property qualification for the suffrage was dropped, that for membership in the lower house reduced from 250 to 200 acres, and the qualification of senators was fixed at 250 acres. The method of selecting the governor was changed. In 1777 he had been elected by the lower house of the assembly. Now the lower house suggested three names to the senate, which chose one of them as governor. Constitution of 1798 The third of the state constitutions is one of great importance. The men who directed the work of the convention represented the highest ability of the state. Among the delegates were Jared Irwin, James Jackson, Thomas Spalding, Peter J. Carnes, 138 History of Georgia ^H Robert Watkins and Benjamin Taliaferro. So well was their work done that Georgians lived under this constitution until the Civil War. The cumbersome method of electing the governor was replaced by the simpler plan of having the two houses of the assembly meet in joint session for that purpose. Property qualifications for the governor, senators and representatives were lowered, but not abandoned. No one was eligible for the governor's seat who did not possess five hundred acres of land and four thousand dollars' worth of prop- erty. This constitution established an adequate system of courts. The African slave trade was abolished. Under the Federal Constitution the slave trade might have been continued until 1808; and it is interesting to have this evidence of the decline of the importance of slavery before the wholesale plant- ing of cotton began. The passage of slaves across the ocean in the holds of ships, with the slow rate of speed, and the inhumanity of the skippers, was a very horrible thing; and public sentiment all over the Union, South as well as North, was against it. The Constitution of 1798, as well as that of 1789, provided for habeas corpus, trial by jury, freedom of the press, and religious toleration. Summary After declaring their independence of Great Britain, the thirteen colonies entered into a loose History of Georgia 139 form of union under a constitution known as the Articles of Confederation; but after a few years a demand arose for a stronger government. A new Constitution was, therefore, made in 1787 by a con- vention summoned to suggest amendments to the existing constitution, and was adopted by all the states. This Federal Constitution is the one under which we now live. The state of Georgia adopted two new constitutions before the close of the century, one in 1789, the other in 1798. The Constitution of 1777 had been hastily made during the Revolu- tion, and many of its provisions were unsatisfactory. CHAPTER XII SETTLEMENT OF MIDDLE AND NORTH GEORGIA, 1 782-1800 Desolate Condition of Georgia dl^l The dawn of peace found Georgia in a prostrate condition. The more important towns, Savannah, Sun- bury, Ebenezer, and Augusta, were almost in ruins. Agriculture and commercial operations had been abandoned; hundreds of people had left the state; many negro slaves had fled or been taken away by royalists; churches and schools were closed; there were no courts nor judges. The hand of war bore peculiarly hard on Georgia because of the fratricidal nature of the struggle in this state. Recuperation But the recovery began at once, and in a very short time the ravages of war were repaired. The planters in the low country about Savannah were soon pursuing their former lives and occupations. In North Georgia suffering was especially great be- cause the settlements were new and there were no well established and populous communities. 140 History of Georgia 141 Immigration from Virginia and the Carolinas With the cessation of hostilities, a remarkable im- migration of settlers set in from the states to the north of Georgia. The seaboard settlements were made by Europeans; but the settlers of Middle and North Georgia were native Americans, moving southward in search of new lands. Virginia, Mary- land, North Carolina and South Carolina all contributed to people the vacant territory of our state. This movement had begun a score of years before the Revolutionary War. As soon as slavery was allowed and the early restrictions on land tenure were removed in 1750, the rich lands of Georgia became irresistibly attractive to settlers, and Georgia's wise policy of granting land free to actual settlers brought thousands of immigrants. The records of the Gov- ernor and Council for a number of years after the resignation of the Trustees in 1752 are largely a record of land grants. The first immigrants came principally into St. George's parish, now cut up into Burke, Jefferson and Screven Counties. Wilkes County Settled. Head Rights Need for more land was soon felt, and in 1763 and 1773 Governor Wright obtained several cessions of land from the Indians. The most important of these tracts was the land lying around the Broad and Little Rivers. The Constitution of 1777 named this land Wilkes County. Two hundred acres of land were 142 History of Georgia offered to each head of a family settling in Georgia. This method of granting lands was known as the Head Rights system. In addition to the two hundred acres, fifty acres were given for each child and each slave owned by the head of the family, provided that no grantee was to have rights for more than ten negroes. Subsequent amendments modified the law so as to prevent too much land going to one person and to prohibit people from getting land grants and not coming to settle. Immigrants poured into the Broad and Little River country in a steady stream, a movement which was not checked during the early years of the War, for the reason that North Georgia was far from the scene of conflict. In 1779, how- ever, when the British invaded North Georgia, a temporary check came; the new settlements were in many cases entirely destroyed and a large number of people fled into Carolina. After 1782 the flood of immigration was again turned toward Georgia. Wilkes County was settled with marvellous rapidity. The first census, 1790, revealed the interesting fact that of the 82,000 Georgians, 36,000 lived in that county alone. Franklin and Washington Counties Settled Before the end of the century another large body of land was made available. The Cherokees and Creeks took the part of the British in the war and committed many crimes against life and property. In History of Gior([ia • l-t3 1783 a raid was organized against them and they were compelled to cede a tract of land lying about the sources of the Oconee. This tract was divided by the Legislature in 1784 into two counties, the northernmost being named for Franklin, the south- ern for Washington. Immigrants were invited. One thousand acres of land was set as the limit for each family, and a price of three shillings per acre was put on the land. This price discouraged immi- gration, and the following year the law was amended so as to require payment only for each acre in excess of one thousand acres granted to each family. This land also filled rapidly. The source of immigration was the Scotch-Irish^ settlements in the ^ The Scotch-Irish were descended from a colony of Scotch Presbyterians, who were settled in Ulster, North Ireland, in the seventeenth century. The colony of Protestants was planted there to offset the Catholic element, or native Irish. There were some intermarriages between the Scotch and the Irish, but on the whole the two peoples kept apart. The Scotch of North Ireland pros- pered. Soon their flourishing manufactories of linen and woolen goods aroused the jealousy of English merchants and at the close of the century their industry was crippled by adverse legislation. Added to their economic troubles, religious persecution came in the early years of the eighteenth century. They were forbidden to keep schools, marriages performed by their clergy were declared illegal, and they were deprived of the right to hold office. These persecutions led to wholesale emigration to America. Between 1730 and 1770, a half million of them came to this country. The Scotch-Irish were about one-sixth of the total population of the colonies at the time of the Revolution. Such men as Andrew Jackson, John C. Calhoun and Stonewall Jackson were of Scotch- Irish descent. 144 History of Georgia Carolinas. The population of North and Middle Georgia soon exceeded that of South Georgia, and the seat of government was moved to Louisville, in Jefferson County in 1796; but this proving an un- healthy place, the capital was fixed at the new town of Milledgeville in 1807. Character of Immigrants Burke is the oldest of the counties peopled by immigrants from the states to the north of Georgia. Indeed, there were a few settlers in that county before Oglethorpe came. One George Galphin, a famous Indian trader, is known to have had, at a very early date, a trading station on the Ogeechee River. At the time of the Revolution Burke was thickly settled. Whence these immigrants came is uncer- tain, as the county records have been destroyed; but the names of some of the early settlers have come down to us and they indicate that Virginians and North Carolinians in early times probably found their way into the county. Our knowledge of Wilkes County is quite full and its history may be taken as typical of the development of the middle Georgia counties. The earliest comers to any new country are usually a hardy class of men, in humble circumstances, men fitted by nature for the hardships of frontier life, and caring little for the comforts of civilization. Many such people came to Wilkes County just before the Revolutionary War. History of Georgia 145 Their lives were very hard. Cut off from communi- cation v^ith the world by almost impassable forests, with none but savages for neighbors, constantly in danger of Indian forays, these people set to work to make homes for themselves. Their first houses were log cabins with dirt floors; their clothes and shoes were made at home; game, milk and bread constituted their fare. This pioneer class of men was followed shortly after the war by people in better circumstances, usually Virginians. The pioneers moved from the older communities because the wealthy people absorbed their lands. Tobacco planting was the prin- cipal industry of the Virginian planters; their lands becoming exhausted they moved on after the pioneers. Tobacco exhausts the soil very quickly, and the people of the older communities were suffering from land hunger. The Virginians settled on Broad River, in that part of Wilkes County which was laid off in 1790 as Elbert County. This was the largest settle- ment, but many Virginians were scattered through- out that part of Georgia. The historian, Geo. G. Smith, says: "These Broad River people were well- to-do, brought with them from their homes a few negroes and such furniture as could be brought in wagons, and their live stock. They found excellent land and a fine range and were soon independent, and many of them became quite wealthy. They were people of great worth, and their descendants have 146 History of Georgia been distinguished for their public services."^ The Virginians brought with them a great deal of state pride. They were spoken of for many years as "the Virginia settlement." Some of the best known Georgia families came in those years from Virginia, among them the Crawfords, Gilmers, Lewises, Mathews, Jordans and Barnetts. Among the North Carolinians we find the Clarkes, Waltons and Campbells. Franklin and Washington Counties were settled largely by Scotch-Irish people, from the Anderson district of South Carolina, and North Carolina. They were a fine stock, thrifty, frugal and independent. Two Nuclei of Growth in Georgia It is thus clear that Georgia has developed from two centers, one about the seaboard, where emigrants from Europe settled — English, Scotch, Irish, French, Germans, Swiss; the other, in North and Middle Georgia, where the land was occupied by Americans coming from the older states. From the latter nucleus are descended the bulk of present day Georgians. Society in the Early Nineteenth Century There was a sharp division between the two centers of population. On the coast, society was ^ Smith, George G., Story of Georgia and the Georgia People, p. 140. History of Georgia 147 more mature. In the planter class, wealthy in land and slaves, education and culture were the rule. But there was a large element of poorer people, living in the pine woods of the frontier. They were as far removed from the planter class as possible, in point of property, culture and ambition. In North and Middle Georgia society was more homogeneous in the early part of the nineteenth century. The Virginians formed a society among themselves, it is true, but there was not so great a distinction between the planter and the pioneer class as existed on the seaboard. Class distinction emerged later as cotton culture on a large scale was intro- duced. The people of the seaboard followed the usual social customs of English people of that day. Clothes, wines and luxuries of all sorts were im- ported direct from Europe. In the upper part of the state society was somewhat more primitive. There were few books and education was rare. The young people found their principal amusement in dancing. The boys and men raced horses, shot for prizes, fought at the court house on Saturday, and drank whiskey somewhat freely. Governor Gilmer, who was born in the Broad River settlement, in 1790, has left this account of the North Carolina element in Wilkes County: ''AH work, little play, no fruit, poor eating, thin clothing, open houses, hard beds, and few blankets, made children hardy or killed them. No novels, pianos, or idleness filled the heads 148 History of Georgia ^H of the girls with vain imaginings. The singing at the meeting houses of the primitive Baptists tempted but few to attend for the sake of the melody. The great pleasure indulged in by the young people was dancing at night. The married women sought recrea- tion from their six days' work by visiting their neighbors on Sunday. The men went to musters, shooting matches and horse races on Saturdays. Housekeepers treated their friends and their own families to a pudding for dinner when company came, and the man of the house drew forth his bottle of whiskey. . . . The preacher and the school- master, the first to commence the onward march of civilization, were very slow in reaching outskirt settlements. Most who did were drunken Irishmen or dissolute Virginians, who found the restraints of society in the old countries too binding for their comfort, and, therefore, moved to the new. News- papers were confined to the select few. It appears from the record of the court of Ordinary of Wilkes County that five out of sixteen wills had the makers' mark put to them instead of their signature."^ Industry The planters of the coast produced rice and corn in large quantities. Slaves were very numerous; large plantations were the rule. In North Georgia ^ Gilmer, Geo. R., Georgians, p. 179. History of Georgia 149 stockraising was for a number of years the principal industry. As soon as sufficient land could be cleared, tobacco became the staple commodity. The Vir- ginians had been tobacco planters at home and had been originally attracted to Georgia because the fields looked suitable for this form of agriculture. The North Georgians also produced practically every- thing they used, cattle, hogs, wheat, corn, and cotton for home manufacture. It was a day of small farms in that section, and diversified agriculture was prevalent. Indians The Indians were a constant menace to the frontier settlements. They stole cattle, cut off and murdered isolated planters, and made living on the borders perilous for many years. An early law required the men to carry arms to church. The story of the expulsion of the Indians will be related in another chapter. Summary Georgia recuperated rapidly from the desolation that accompanied the Revolution. A steady stream of Virginians and Carolinians poured into the state for twenty years after peace was restored. These people settled on the lands acquired at intervals from the Indians. The new counties of Wilkes, Washing- ton, and Franklin filled quickly. Wilkes County 150 History of Georgia in 1790 had a population almost equal to that of the remainder of Georgia. The newcomers were given lands under a Head Rights system, by which the amount of land an individual might obtain depended upon the size of his family and the number of slaves he brought. Society was crude, educational facili- ties poor, luxuries rare. The farmers depended upon their own acres for practically everything they used. The Virginian element of the immigrants were in better circumstances than the other North Georgians. They had belonged to the planter class in Virginia and came to Georgia in search of fresh tobacco lands. On the coast, society was older and more refined. There were greater differences between the several classes than was the case in North Georgia. Rice growing was the leading interest of the coast farmers. CHAPTER XIII THE YAZOO LAND FRAUD, 1795-1814 Boundary Troubles Disputes over boundaries were a fruitful source of trouble in Georgia from the beginning of the colony to the close of the eighteenth century. The colony had had to fight for its very existence when Spain attempted to enforce her claim that Georgia had been established on Spanish territory. The Spanish menace was removed from our southern border in 1763, when Florida was ceded to Great Britain. At that time the southern boundary of the province was fixed at the St. Mary's River. South Carolina Claim This extension of the territory of Georgia to the St. Mary's was protested by South Carolina. The charter boundary of South Carolina covered all the country as far south as the St. Mary's. Georgia was, therefore, carved out of South Carolina, and as Georgia's charter boundary had been fixed at the Altamaha River, South Carolina had some ground for claiming that the land between the Altamaha and the St. Mary's had never left her possession. South Carolina abandoned her claim at a conference be- tween the tw^o states held at Beaufort in 1789. 151 152 History of Georgia Claims of Spain, the United States and Georgia to West Florida When England acquired Florida from Spain, in 1763, she divided that province into two parts, called East Florida and West Florida, and fixed as the northern boundary of West Florida a line drawn from the mouth of the Yazoo River, a tributary of the Mississippi, eastward to the Chattahoochee River. The territory north of West Florida to a line drawn from the headwaters of the Savannah to the Mississippi was claimed by Georgia. The West Florida region became a bone of con- tention at the close of the Revolution. During the course of that memorable struggle Spain seized the opportunity to reconquer Florida from Great Britain, but in the treaty of peace ceding Florida back to Spain, England fixed the northern boundary of the cession at the 31st parallel, instead of sur- rendering the entire province of West Florida. All of the territory north of the 31st parallel was ceded to the United States. Spain was dissatisfied with this arrangement and refused to acknowledge the title of the United States to the part of West Florida under dispute. Georgia also put in a claim to this territory, it being the custom of the states to claim possession of all western lands lying between exten- sions of their northern and southern boundaries. The general government disputed Georgia's contention on the ground that this western land had been con- History of Georg'in 15,') quered by the nation as a whole and ought to belong to the United States. The dispute between the United States and Spain as to the West Florida boundary became the subject matter of treaty negotiations between the two nations, and it was for several years uncertain what the result of the negotiations would be; but in 1791; Spain relinquished her claim to the land north of the 31st parallel. Georgia then asserted her owner- ship of the immense region between the Chattahoo- chee and the Mississippi. First Yazoo Sale This great western domain was the occasion of a very striking incident in the history of Georgia, known as the Yazoo Fraud. There was a great rush of people to the West after the Revolution. As it was inconvenient and dangerous for settlers to go singly, an excellent opportunity was opened for land speculators to get control of large bodies of land, organize companies of people who desired to migrate, and thus secure permanence and safety to the new settlements, incidentally making huge profits on the land sold to the settlers. In 1789 four land com- panies were organized for the purpose of buying from Georgia parts of the western territory. The land which they desired to obtain was in the neighborhood of the Yazoo River, and on that account the companies were called Yazoo Companies. 154 History of Georgia i As the United States government claimed all of the western territory, and as Spain was in actual pos- f' session of part of the Yazoo land, it was an easy matter to persuade the Georgia legislature to sell what claim the state had in the land. Hence the Yazoo Companies succeeded in getting deeds to 14,400,000 acres for an insignificant price, $207,580. Failure of the Sale The act making this grant provided that credit should be given for two years, but that on failure to pay at the expiration of that time, the grants should lapse. No provision was made as to what sort of money the state would require, but when the com- panies tendered worthless paper money, the Treas- urer refused to accept it, with the result that the grants of 1789 came to nothing. Second Yazoo Sale, 1795 But so great were the profits to be realized from this sort of speculation that the promoters kept at work. President Washington discountenanced the sale of western lands to settlement promoters, on the ground that the states had no right to sell lands in the possession of the Indians without first buying their rights, and because it was feared that colonies planted so close to New Orleans might come under the control of Spain. There was a great deal of dissatisfaction at that time among the Americans who History of Georgia 155 15G History of Geoi\^ia ^ had settled on the Mississippi River, on account of the fact that Spain controlled the Mississippi and would not allow them to use the stream for their commerce. Indeed, Spain tried to detach the western settlements from their allegiance to the United States by offering to give them the right to use the river, if they would become Spanish subjects. In spite of these objections, however, in 1795 four new land companies made a concerted ef^fort to secure possession of western land. James Gunn, a United States Senator from Georgia, was the leader of the movement. The scheme was entirely success- ful. The legislature granted to the companies 40,- 000,000 acres of land, for about $500,000. In each case a part of the purchase money was to be deposited before the passage of the act, and payment of the remainder was required before November i, 1795. The state gave no guarantee against Spanish claims and was not to be held responsible for peace with the Indians. Bribery of the Legislature It seems clear that the legislature was bribed to make this sale. It was a small body of twenty sena- tors and thirty-four representatives. Ten senators voted for the measure, eight against it; in the house, nineteen voted aye, ten voted no. It was believed that only one honest vote was cast for the act. All the other votes had been purchased either by gifts History of Gcoi-sid 157 of money or of shares in the land companies. It was said that "in the lobbies of the Senate and House alternately were seen a judge of the Supreme Court of the United States, from Pennsylvania, with twenty-five thousand dollars in his hands, as a cash payment; a judge of the United States District Court of Georgia, passing off shares of land to the mem- bers for their votes, and a senator from Georgia [Gunn], who had perfidiously neglected to proceed to Philadelphia to take his seat in Congress, and who was absent from his post until the last days of its ses- sion, bullying with a loaded whip, and by turns cajol- ing the numerous understrappers in speculation. There were also seen a judge of our State Courts, and other eminent Georgians, surrounding our poor degraded representatives, offering shares, sub-shares and half sub-shares, striving to frighten some, and to seduce others into compliance with their will."^ Even before the governor signed the act, there were indications of popular disapproval. A number of prominent citizens protested against the measure, William H. Crawford among others. Governor Matthews has been strongly censured for having signed the bill. No one has accused him of corrup- tion in the matter, but he was a weak and incompe- tent executive and allowed himself to be controlled by the politicians about him, most of whom were interested in the land speculation. ■^ White, George, Slatist'ics of Georgia, p. 50. 158 History of Georgia The Rescinding Act of 1796 Though this whole transaction was disgraceful and a stain on the name of Georgia, the citizens of the state promptly did what they could to undo the mischief. A state convention met soon after the passage of the Yazoo act and condemned the sale. It became the issue in the elections of that year. General James Jackson/ one of our United States senators, felt so strongly on the subject that he re- signed his seat in the Senate and returned home to lead a movement looking to the repeal of the act. He was elected to the legislature from Chatham County. A majority of the new legislature being pledged to repeal the obnoxious act, a rescinding measure was passed in February, 1796, and the pur- chase money paid into the Treasury of Georgia was ^ James Jackson was an Englishman by birth, immigrating to Georgia from Devonshire in 1772, at the age of fifteen. He was by nature an ardent republican, and though home ties were still fresh, he at once embraced the patriotic cause in 1776. Entering the army as a private, he rapidly rose to the rank of Lieutenant- Colonel, and after the war became a Brigadier-General of militia. General Jackson entered politics immediately after the Revolution, serving several terms in the state legislature. In 1788, he was elected Governor at the age of thirty, but declined the office on the ground that he was too young to fill the position. He was a member of the first Congress, and in 1793, 1794 and 1795 was United States Senator. Georgians did not forget his modest atti- tude towards the governorship, and ten years after he refused the office, he was again elected. After the expiration of his term as Governor, General Jackson was again sent to the United States Senate, and was a member of that body at the time of his death in 1806. History of Georgia 159 James Jackson. From an engraving lent by Mr. A. B. Caldiuell, Publisher, Atlanta, Ga. ordered to be refunded. This rescinding act caused a great outcry throughout the Union. Anticipating trouble, the Yazoo speculators immediately on re- 160 History of Geor,^ia ceiving their grants in 1795 had gone to other sections of the country and sold part of their holdings at enor- mous profit. The secondary purchasers maintained that they knew nothing of the circumstances under which the sale had been lobbied through the legisla- ture. Though denounced far and wide, the state stood by the rescinding act and gave no satisfaction to any claimant. Cession of the Western Lands, 1802 About this time Georgia surrendered to the United States government all of her western claims. In so do- ing, she followed the example of the other states, all of which had given up their western territory. The terms of the cession were that Georgia should receive $1,250,000 and that the Indian title to her reserved territory should be extinguished. The central gov- ernment assumed all responsibility for settling claims arising from the Yazoo sales. In this way the Yazoo Fraud became a national issue. As soon as the news was heralded abroad that the government was about to purchase Georgia's western claims, Yazoo claim- ants swarmed to Washington to warn the government that the land was being bought at the risk of the United States, as their claim was a prior one. The commissioners appointed by the President to act for the central government were James Madison, Secre- tary of State ; Albert Gallatin, Secretary of the Treas- ury ; and Levi Lincoln, the Attorney General. On the History of Georgia IGl part of Georgia, the commissioners were James Jack- son, Abraham Baldwin and John Milledge/ For a number of years after the purchase. Congress was besieged with petitions from people seeking redress. The Federalist party and some of the northern Dem- ocrats favored paying the claims of the holders of the land scrip, as it was called ; but the southern wing of the Democratic party, led by John Randolph, of Virginia, succeeded in defeating the claimants year after year. The representatives of Georgia in Con- gress during the Yazoo agitation, George M. Troup, William W. Bibb, John Forsyth, and others, firmly opposed any appropriation to settle the claims. The Commissioners Recommend a Settlement of the Claims The commissioners appointed on behalf of the United States to look into the Yazoo matter were in- structed to examine the titles of the various claimants and make a recommendation to Congress. Their final report was made in 1803. The report stated ^ John Milledge was born in Savannah in 1757 and before reaching manhood was thrown into the Revolutionary struggle. He w^as a member of the party that performed the first overt act of the conflict in this state in breaking open the powder magazine in Savannah. At the close of the War, Milledge entered poli- tics ; sat as a member of the lower house in the Assembly in 1782; served several terms in Congress from 1792 to 1802, when he became Governor of Georgia, from which position he was advanced to a United States Senatorship on the death, in 1 806, 162 History of Georgia 1 that all the lands had by that time passed out of the hands of the original speculators into the possession of secondary purchasers, who claimed to have bought without knowledge of fraud; but the commissioners found on the face of the deeds a provision that pur- chasers should have no claim on the speculators "by reason of any defect in their title from the State of Georgia." This clause put purchasers on notice, and the commissioners reported that in their opinion the title of the claimants was not good. However, they recommended that "the interest of the United States, the tranquillity of those who may hereafter inhabit that territory, and various equitable considerations which may be urged in favor of most of the present claimants, render it expedient to enter into a com- promise on reasonable terms." They, therefore, rec- ommended that $5,000,000 be appropriated to settle the claims and end the long controversy. The idea of the commissioners was that the settlement of the vast and fertile region in question would be retarded unless the land titles were cleared up. But Congress could not be induced to take this view, and for seven of General James Jackson. After filling this office for three years, Governor Milledge retired from public life. Milledge was a member of the committee appointed to select a site for the University of Georgia, and when the committee chose a situ- ation which was not on the property owned by the Univeisity, he purchased the tract and presented it to the University. The former capital, Milledgeville, w^as named in honor of Governor Milledge. He died in 1818 at his home near Augusta. History of Georgia 163 years longer the Yazoo claims were a constant subject of discussion. The Supreme Court Intervenes Failing to get any satisfaction out of Congress, the Yazooists hit upon the idea that their case would be aided if they could get the Supreme Court to declare the act of the legislature of Georgia in rescinding the sale unconstitutional. Proceedings were begun and in 1810 the case known as Fletcher vs. Peck was decided. Chief Justice Marshall handed down the decision, which held the rescinding act uncon- stitutional, in that it impaired the validity of a con- tract. Following this decision Congress finally in 1 8 14 passed an act appropriating $5,000,000 to settle all Yazoo claims, the act requiring that the money be raised from sales of the land in question. This settlement has seemed to some historians a fair and equitable one. It has been pronounced "probably just and unquestionably expedient." Georgians, however, long resented the payment of these claims. It was many years before the feeling over the Fraud died out in the state. Governor Wilson Lumpkin in his autobiography says that no man in Georgia was ever promoted to high office who was in any way connected with the Yazoo Fraud. The prevailing sentiment in regard to the action of the government in paying the claims was thus expressed by Governor Troup: ''The act was. Uii History of Georgia m effect and substance, a formal decree of the high- est authorities known to the Constitution of the United States, in perpetual testimony of the reward which awaits those who shall in future time success- fully bribe and corrupt the representatives of the people to sell their country." Summary ''The Yazoo Fraud" was the name given to the sale of millions of acres of Georgia's western domain at the close of the eighteenth century. The sale was ob- tained by bribing the legislature. When a new legis- lature repealed the Yazoo Act the year following the sale, the purchasers of the land, and those to whom part of the holdings had been sold, commenced a fight, which lasted nearly twenty years, to secure redress. Georgia escaped from responsibility by sell- ing her rights to the disputed lands to the central government in 1802. After the Supreme Court in 1810 declared that Georgia's rescinding act was un- constitutional, Congress appropriated $5,000,000 to pay the Yazoo claimants. m CHAPTER XIV POLITICAL PARTIES, 1 787-1840 Federalists and Antifederalists The Constitution of the United States was a com- promise between those who desired practically to erase state lines and create a strong national state, and those who were unwilling for the individual states to surrender any considerable part of their sov- ereign powers. Even when, after much bickering and disagreement, the articles of the Constitution had been agreed upon by the delegates to the Convention, there was grave doubt whether the states would ratify the new form of government. The American people divided into two parties on the question of adop- tion. Those who favored the Constitution were called Federalists, those opposing It Antifederalists. Both parties had numerous and ardent supporters In every state. In some states the parties were of al- most equal strength, and In such cases great struggles were necessary before a majority could be won over in favor of the Constitution. The effort to defeat adoption was not confined to any one section. The fight was hardest In New York, Massachusetts and Virginia. New York adopted by a majority of two 16." 166 History of Georgia votes; Massachusetts by a majority of nineteen votes in a convention of three hundred and fifty-five mem- bers; while in Virginia the vote stood eighty-one for and seventy-nine against adoption. The hesitation of New York and Virginia was due to their reluc- tance to surrender state control over commerce. They feared that New England might get control over the commercial policy of the nation and use that power to the injury of the other sections. Georgia appears to have ratified the Constitution unanimously. Georgia newspapers paid little atten- tion to the Constitutional Convention which met in Augusta, in December, 1787. There is no record of any debate on the question of adoption. Antifederalists Become the Democratic-Republican Party The Antifederalists, defeated, were compelled to bow to the will of the majority. Though the name "Antifederalist" was dropped, future political parties continued to exist on the issues which had been fought out in the constitutional conventions of the several states. Under the leadership of Thomas Jef- ferson the Antifederalists took the name of Demo- cratic-Republicans, the guiding principle of the or- ganization being a strict adherence to the letter of the Constitution. Since the terms of the Constitu- tion were the best they had been able to obtain in the direction of state supremacy, henceforth they op- History of Georgia 167 posed any attempt to stretch the powers that had been delegated to the central government. The Demo- cratic-Republicans believed in the exercise of a mini- mum amount of government; the Federalists strove to make the Union a national state by limiting the sphere of state activity and by enlarging and extend- ing the powers of the central government. The Federalist Party Loses its Following in Georgia The apparent lack of any discussion over the adop- tion of the Constitution in Georgia indicates that Georgians had obtained all they could reasonably expect and that a majority were in favor of a stronger form of Union. But the peculiar trend of state af- fairs caused Georgia to take a strong stand against any interference on the part of the United States government. The governors of Georgia were con- stantly becoming involved in disputes with the cen- tral government in the matter of cessions of Indian lands. In 1790 the legislature formally protested against the claim of the United States to have con- trol over Indian lands in Georgia. Another cause of hostility towards the Federalist party and the gen- eral principle of increasing the power of the central government was the famous Chisholm case. Chis- holm, a resident of South Carolina, in 1792 brought suit against Georgia in the Supreme Court of the United States. The question the court had to decide was, ''Could a sovereign state be sued by a citizen of 168 History of Georgia another state?" The court by a vote of two to one decided in the affirmative. The legislature of Georgia promptly passed an act imposing the death penalty on any officer who should attempt to carry out the decision of the court by serving papers on the authorities of Georgia. A majority of the states sym- pathized with Georgia's attitude, and an amendment to the Constitution, the Eleventh, was adopted, mak- ing such suits unconstitutional. In these controversies the public men of Georgia had been forced into expressing emphatically their belief in state sovereignty over all matters the con- trol of which had not been given to the central gov- ernment. There being but little difference of opin- ion in Georgia on this issue, the party which fa- vored extending the power of the United States did not succeed in retaining its following in our state. In the Presidential election of 1796 the Federalists carried only four of the twenty-one counties. Era of Personal Politics While practically all Georgians, therefore, were in national politics members of the Democratic-Re- publican party during the first three decades of the nineteenth century, it must not be supposed that it was a time of no political strife. As is always the case in ''one-party" states, factions soon appeared in the dominant party, and the fights between the fol- lowers of the several leaders were quite as bitter as History of Georgia 169 William Harris Crawford. From an engraving lent by Mr. A. B. Caldivell. they could have been had there been fundamental differences in principles. It was an era of personal 170 History of Georgia politics. The people of the state tended to fall into rather sharply separated classes. We have seen how along the Broad River two groups of emigrants, from Virginia and North Carolina, settled. The Virginians came from the planter class and were somewhat aristocratic in their views. The North Carolinians, on the other hand, came from the small farmer class. With the coming of cotton production on a large scale, the differences between rich planters and small farmers were emphasized. This social and economic division had come about long before on the seacoast, and it was natural that the aristocratic ele- ment of the two centers of population, the seaboard and the uplands, should act together in politics, and that the small farmer and frontier element should act together. General James Jackson led the aristo- crats of the seacoast, and William Harris Crawford^ the same people in the uplands. ^William Harris Crawford was born in Virginia, in 1772, his parents migrating to Georgia in 1783. Young Crawford was sent to the academy of Professor Moses Waddell, later President of the University of Georgia. While a student there, Crawford was associated with John C. Calhoun. After teaching a few years at Richmond Academy, Augusta, Crawford removed to Lexington, Oglethorpe County, and began the practice of law. After having held several minor state offices, Crawford became a United States Senator in 1807, and at once made a favorable impression on the country by his extraordinary mental capacity and fine personal appearance. During the last days of the Napoleonic Empire, he was sent as American Ambassador to France. Napoleon is said to have been struck by his princely bearing. In 181 5, President Madison appointed Crawford Secretary of War, but he was soon Histoiy of Georgia 171 On the death of General Jackson in 1806 his posi- tion of leadership in South Georgia was assumed by George M. Troup. As Crawford soon withdrew from state politics, Troup became the leader of the entire aristocratic element, and this faction was known as the Troup party. Opposed to Troup were Elijah and John Clarke," father and son, who con- trolled the small farmer class and all frontiersmen. A number of celebrated political battles were fought between these two parties. John Clarke and Troup opposed each other for Governor in 18 19, Clarke being the successful candidate, and in 1821 transferred to the more Important Treasury Department, a post which he retained during Monroe's administration. Crawford was looked upon as the natural successor of Monroe. It is highly probable that the highest office in the Republic would have been conferred on him, but for an untimely stroke of paraly- sis, which necessitated his retirement from public life. After a few years of rest, Crawford partially recovered his health, and became a superior court judge in Georgia, which position he was filling at the time of his death in 1834. " General John Clarke was a North Carolinian. He had prac- tically no educational advantages, as he grew to manhood during the Revolution. At sixteen, he was a soldier under his father. General Elijah Clarke, and performed valiant service in North Georgia. After the Revolution, he attained the rank of Major- General of militia. Clarke was the acknowledged and beloved leader of the small farmer class against the Virginian element and the planters of the seacoast. In biographical sketches of Clarke, most of which were written by his bitter political and personal enemies, he Is represented as a turbulent, quarrelsome and rough frontiersman, devoid of culture, education and refinement; but even his enemies gave him credit for patriotism and conspicuous personal bravery. li V History oj G turgid he was re-elected over Troup. At the 1823 election Clarke was not a candidate, but Troup defeated the candidate of the Clarke party, Matthew Talbot. In 1825 the system of choosing the governor w^as changed from election by the legislature to election by the people directly. Troup and Clarke w^ere again the contestants, and this time Troup defeated his old enemy. Measures Substituted for Men During all these years there w^as no essential dif- ference in the political creeds of the two Georgia factions. Toward the close of the third decade of the century the thinking men of the state began to tire of personal issues and to long for discussion of national questions. A chance for the two factions to take sides on a national issue came w^hen Governor Troup al- most brought on war w^ith the general government in connection with the question of removing the Creeks from Georgia. Many Georgians felt that the Gov- ernor had gone too far in his championship of state sovereignty, and the Clarke leaders seized upon this sentiment in the hope of discrediting the Troupers. The Clarke party changed its name to ''Union Party" while the Troupers, nothing loth to accept the challenge, styled themselves the "State Rights Party." This healthy reaction against personalities in politics began about 1829, and was greatly assisted History of Georgia ] 73 by the stirring agitation in the early thirties over the tariff. Protective Tariffs In order to encourage manufacturing in the United States, Congress in 1816 imposed tariffs on certain manufactured articles. There was little op- position to the measure from any section, but w^hen the manufacturing classes, acquiring greater and greater influence over Congress, demanded and re- ceived constantly increasing aid. Southerners took a very hostile attitude toward ^'protection," because the South was largely an agricultural section and received little benefit from protective tariffs. This section felt that the value of the products of southern labor was reduced because the amount of goods for which these products could be exchanged was greatly lessened by the South's having to pay a higher price for clothes, shoes and other articles than would have been the case if foreign goods were allowed to com- pete in our markets with those of the New England States. Feeling on this subject grew so bitter that in 1 83 1 South Carolina asserted that it was unconstitu- tional for Congress to levy a protective tariff, and threatened to ''nullify" the tariff law, so far as South Carolina was concerned. Nullification meant that if one of the states became dissatisfied with a law of Congress she might declare it of no force within her borders. Congress did not modify the tariff law iT-i History of Liiorgid in a manner to meet the views of South Caro- linians, and in 1832 the state attempted to put into praetice the principle of nullification. But President Andrew Jackson believed that it was his duty to uphold the authority of Congress. He felt that if everv state were allowed to put its own interpreta- tion on the laws of Congress, the Union would soon amount to nothing. Therefore he sent a message to Congress, known as the Force Bill Message, asking that he he empowered to use the army and navy of the United States to compel South Carolina to obey the law. ^^llen it became clear that President Jack- son was in earnest, and that none of the states ap- proved of South Carolina's radical action, a conven- tion repealed the nullification ordinance, thus reliev- ino; a very critical situation. Nullification in Georgia The current of events in South Carolina was watched with great interest in Georgia, as our people were no less hostile to the tariff than were the South Carolinians. In November, 1832, a convention met in Milledgeville to discuss the situation. John Mc- Pherson Berrien,^ until recentlv a member of Presi- ^ John McPherson Berrien's father served under Washin2:ton in the Revolution, and in the house occupied by ^VashiniXton when his farewell address to the army was delivered, the subject of this note was born, in 1781. His father removed to Georgia when John was only a few months old. Berrien was irrJiduated from Princeton at fifteen, studied law. and was admitted to the bar History of (jeorj^ia i-) John McPhersox Berrien. From an engraving lent by Mr. W. J. DeRenne. before the completion of his eighteenth year. After several years of service as judge and legislator, he became United States Senator in 1825. His unusual oratorical power won for him the name "the American Cicero." When Andrew Jackson became President in 1829, he appointed Berrien to the cabinet position of Attorney- General ; but two years later Jackson quarreled with his cabinet and most of them resigned. After the break with Jackson, Ber- rien joined the Whig party, and re-entered national politics nine years later as a senator, when the Whigs came into power on the election of President Harrison. He remained in the Sen- ate until 1852, when he resigned, being seventy-one years of age and desiring to retire from active political life. He died In 1856. 176 History of Georgia dent Jackson's cabinet, led the radical element of the convention; while John Forsyth/ United States Sen- ator and leader of the President's party in the Sen- ate, opposed South Carolina's plan of resistance to national law. After a three days' wrangle in the con- vention, Forsyth, with about fifty followers, with- drew from the convention, as it seemed likely that the majority would follow South Carolina in the nullification movement. The delegates of the Ber- rien faction passed resolutions which came close to embracing the doctrine of nullification. This action, however, does not appear to have been the sentiment of the state, for the legislature shortly thereafter con- demned the proceedings of the convention, called for a convention of Southern states to discuss the ^ John Forsyth, a Virginian by birth, was brought by his par- ents as a four year old child to Georgia. In 1799, at eighteen, he was graduated from Princeton, in which institution so many eminent Georgians of his generation were trained. On his entrance into political life, Forsyth was made Attorney-General of Georgia, and in 181 3 was sent to Congress. He was advanced to the Sen- atorship in 1818, but one year later resigned to accept the post of Minister to Spain; and while acting in that capacity, carried through the negotiations for the cession of Florida to the United States. In 1827, he became the candidate of the Troup party for the governorship, was elected, and after one term returned to the United States Senate. Forsyth identified himself with the Jack- sonian policies. He strongly opposed nuHification as a lawful remedy for oppressive acts of Congress. On the reorganization of his cabinet, Jackson made Forsyth Secretary of State, the high- est of the cabinet positions. Forsyth retired from public life when the Democratic party w^nt down in defeat in 184.0.. and died in October of the following year. History of Georgia 177 tariff, and passed the following resolution: ''Re- solved, that we abhor the doctrine of nullification as neither a peaceful nor a constitutional remedy, but, on the contrary, as tending to civil commotion and disunion." The public men of Georgia were almost unanimously opposed to South Carolina's action. Troup, Gilmer, William H. Crawford, Forsyth, and Wilson Lumpkin, Governor during the episode, all wrote strongly against nullification. Effect of Nullification on State Politics The two local parties, the Union Party and the State Rights Party, met in conventions during 1833. The Union Party adopted resolutions upholding President Jackson's conduct in connection with the nullification movement in South Carolina. The State Rights Party adopted resolutions to the effect that laws infringing on the rights of states were null and void. This party condemned the President's measures against South Carolina, especially the Force Bill Message, as deadly blows at state rights. The resolutions did not go to the extreme of frankly embracing nullification as a remedy for unconstitu- tional laws, but they were strongly against any co- ercion of states by the federal government. It is plain that Georgians were sharply divided on this subject, and the result was that the movement begun in 1829, looking to political division on principles rather than on leaders, was completed in 1833, ^"^ 178 History of Georgia for a number of years afterward political discussion was on a much higher plane than is ever the case when practically all the people belong to one party and factional fights between rival leaders constitute the only political activity of the state. Whig and Democratic Parties President Jackson made a great many enemies. One of the traits of his peculiar disposition was his habit of imputing personal motives to any one who opposed his views. He inevitably came into con- flict with other men of his party of strong mind and independent character, and one by one read them out of his party. The result was that during his first term as President, from 1828 to 1832, a coali- tion known as the Whig Party was made of all his enemies. Such eminent Georgians as Robert Toombs, Alexander H. Stephens and Berrien w^ere for a time members of this new organization. The State Rights Party of Georgia was absorbed in the Whig Party and adopted its name. The fol- lowers of the President became known as Jacksonian Democrats, or simply Democrats, and the Union Party of Georgia adopted that name. The Jack- sonian Democrats were the political descendants of the Jeffersonian Democratic-Republicans. The Whig and Democratic Parties for several years were quite evenly balanced in Georgia. In 1840 the Whig presidential candidate. General Har- History of Georgia 179 rison, carried Georgia; but the next year the Demo- crats elected Charles J. McDonald in the guberna- torial contest. The Whigs were successful in 1843, electing George W. Crawford as governor. The agitation over slavery in the next decade killed the Whig Party. Its members in Georgia shifted over to the Democratic Party, and Georgia again became a one-party state, as she has since re- mained. Summary Political parties originated in the United States as the result of disagreements as to the sort of union the states should make. Some people desired a strong federal government; others wanted to give it a mini- mum of powers. The advocates of strong central government were called Federalists, their opponents Antifederalists. After the constitution had been adopted these two parties continued, the Antifederal- ists taking the name Democratic-Republican. The main difference between them was that the Federal- ists tried in every way to increase the strength of the federal government, while the Democratic-Repub- licans emphasized the sovereignty of the individual states. Unfortunate disagreements in Georgia be- tween the Governors and the early Presidents, who were Federalists, and other causes, resulted in the decline of the Federalist Party in Georgia, and for twenty years there was only one party. Factions 180 History of Georgia sprang up and bitter contests were waged between adherents of the two sets of leaders. In the third decade of the century a great political crisis came in the United States, when it became necessary for the people to decide whether or not a state could set aside the national law. On this issue Georgians di- vided. Those who favored the President's course in coercing South Carolina were called ^'Unionists," while the strict adherents of state rights sovereignty took the name of ''State Rights" party. These local organizations were absorbed into the two national parties, the Jacksonian Democratic and the Whig. At a later time the Whig Party died out in Georgia, on account of its attitude on the slavery controversy. The details of this movement will be given in a sub- sequent chapter. It is only necessary to say here that the former Whigs joined the Democratic Party, and the feelings aroused by the Civil War and Recon- struction have effectually prevented any other party than the Democratic from obtaining any considerable following in Georgia. Additional Reading: Sketches of John Clarke, William H. Crawford, John M. Berrien, and John Forsyth: Northen, W. J., Men of Mark in Georgia, II. Beginning of Parties in Georgia: Harris, J. C, Stories of Georgia, pp. 227-233. CHAPTER XV PUSHING BACK THE FRONTIER: CREEK INDIANS, 1733-1827 The Creeks During the years between the Yazoo Fraud and the time when the slavery question occupied public attention, the most important political issue in Georgia was the long struggle to get possession of the Indian lands. The principal nations or tribes in Georgia were the Creeks and Cherokees. The Cher- okees lived north of the 34th parallel of latitude/ A line drawn along the Broad River to Athens and thence to Cedartown would describe their southern boundary. Below this line was the Creek Confed- eracy, a sort of loose union of many of the southeast- ern tribes. The Creek nation extended into Ala- bama, where the term "Upper" Creeks was used in contradistinction to the "Lower" Creeks, as they were called in Georgia. In 1773 the Creeks numbered four thousand warriors, the total population being 12,000. In 1820 the total population was estimated at 20,000, of whom only 5,000 lived in Georgia. ^ See map, p. 16. 182 History of Georgia Cessions under Colonial and State Governments At the time of the Revolution the settled portion of Georgia consisted of a narrov^ strip of territory along the seaboard and the Savannah River. This land had been ceded by the Indians in three treaties in 1733, 1763 and 1773. During the Revolutionary War the Indians sided w^ith the British, the royal governors having secured their support by the liberal distribution of presents vs^hen hostilities became immi- nent. As a punishment for their depredations a raid was made in 1783 against both Creeks and Cherokees. Certain lands lying about the sources of the Oconee River w^ere held in joint possession by the two tribes. The Cherokees were forced to cede this land early in 1783, the Creek title being extinguished in November of the same year. The wording of the Creek treaty is not clear, and it is uncertain just how much land the Creeks intended to cede. But the Legislature of Georgia apparently interpreted the cession to in- clude all lands east of the Oconee, since we find this region made into the counties of Franklin and Wash- ington the following year. By the Treaty of Galphinton, 1785, the boundary between the Indians and Georgia was declared to be a line drawn from the confluence of the Oconee and Ocmulgee Rivers to the ''most southern part of the stream called the St. Mary's River." The Treaty of Shoulderbone, 1786, reaffirmed the Treaty of Gal- phinton. History of Georgia 183 The Creek War The treaties of 1783, 1785 and 1786 were made between the Indians and the state authorities, in spite of the fact that under the Articles of Confederation the power of making such treaties had been with- drawn from the states and made a function of the central government. Furthermore, the treaties in question had all been negotiated with a minority of the Creeks, very much against the wishes of the ma- jority. Under the leadership of a famous Indian half-breed chief, named Alexander McGillivray, the discontented element appealed to the central govern- ment for redress, and began a harrowing border war- fare. The Continental Congress, on investigation, declared the treaties of Galphinton and Shoulder- bone illegal, but it was powerless to set aside the wishes of the state of Georgia. In spite of the Creek War settlers continued to pour into the country to the east of the Oconee, where they lived for a num- ber of years in great peril of their lives, in log forts erected at intervals along the river. These forts were large enough to accommodate tents or huts for all the surrounding settlers. The settlers worked in their fields in groups as far as possible, and stood ready at a moment's notice to repel invasion, or to give chase on horseback to bands of marauding savages. United States troops were garrisoned at various points on the Oconee. 184 History of Georgia United States Government Assumes Control over In- dian Cessions In the Federal Constitution of 1789 the treaty making power was given to the President and Sen- ate, including treaties with Indians. President Washington at once took up the exasperating ques- tion of the Creek War in Georgia. On his invita- tion the Creeks sent a delegation of chiefs to New York to confer with him, Alexander McGillivray being the most important of the chiefs present. Washington induced the Creeks to make a new treaty, surrendering all claim to the land east of the Oconee. At the same time, however, the Tallassee country, as extreme south Georgia was called, was restored to them, and the Creeks were guaranteed possession of their remaining lands in Georgia. These two clauses were bitterly opposed in Georgia, as they seemed to assert the sovereignty of the United States over the Indian lands. So strongly did General Elijah Clark, of Revolutionary fame, resent this guarantee to the Indians that he illegally crossed the Oconee and proceeded to make a settlement, but was- forced by the state authorities to give up his project. Georgia Cedes the Western Territory No further cessions of Indian land were obtained between 1790 and 1802. In the latter year Georgia ceded to the United States all land between the Chat- tahoochee and the Mississippi, the national govern- History of Georgia 185 ment binding itself to remove the Indians entirely from Georgia's reserved territory as soon as it could be done ''peaceably and on reasonable terms." The central government held that the Indian tribes were nations in the widest sense of the term, and that their ambassadors were entitled to the courtesies extended to foreign diplomats. Acting on this notion, the Presidents utterly refused to compel the Indians to cede lands against their will. The state government, on the other hand, insisted that Indian tribes were simply "communities without sovereignty and with- out any right to the soil but that of tenants at will." The Presidents of the United States interpreted the agreement with Georgia simply as a promise to use their best endeavors to persuade the Indians to cede land; Georgians regarded the cession of 1802 as bind- ing the federal government to extinguish the Indian title within a very short time, by purchase, if possi- ble; by pressure, if necessary. Under this agreement small cessions were obtained in 1802 and 1804, ex- tending the boundary of Georgia to the Ocmulgee River. The Land Lottery, 1803 The Oconee River is the boundary line between two systems of land distribution. All lands to the east of the Oconee were granted under the Head Rights system, already described.^ There were ^ See p. 142. 186 History of Georgia many objections to this system. Given almost un- limited power of selection, immigrants chose only the best lands, leaving large areas on the frontier unoccupied, with the result that settlement was too sparse for safety. In the second place, it was almost impossible in the wild, unbroken forest for the lines of grants to be determined. It frequently happened that grants covering the same tract of land were is- sued to several different settlers, and endless law suits resulted. The Head Rights system also facilitated land frauds. Unscrupulous persons, with the con- nivance of surveyors, often obtained grants to lands that did not exist, and sold these grants to innocent people. In one Georgia county, Montgomery, land speculators obtained grants to 7,000,000 acres more than the total acreage of the county, and sold the fraudulent grants to unsuspecting persons outside the state. This was known as the Pine Barren Specula- tion, and was a great scandal in 1794 and 1795. Dissastisfaction with this system became so wide- spread that when the new cession was obtained the legislature bestirred itself to invent a new system. In 1803 an act was passed establishing a ''Land Lottery." This institution does not appear to have been used in other states. The act provided that the new lands and all subsequent lands to be ac- quired from the Indians should be surveyed at pub- lic expense and divided into small lots of uniform size. Each lot was then given a number, and a map History of Georgia 187 of the whole was deposited In the surveyor general's office. Slips of paper with numbers representing the lots were placed with many blank slips in a box and people were allowed under certain restrictions to draw for lots. The Land Lottery system proved much more satisfactory than the older system. Fraud was manifestly an impossibility, rich and poor had an equal chance of securing lots, and by preventing the accumulation of large tracts of lands in the hands of speculators settlement was promoted far more rap- idly than formerly. Cession After the War of 1812 The year 1812 found the United States again at war with Great Britain, and, as during the former war, tne Indians assisted the English. A wide con- spiracy of all Indians from Canada to Florida was organized by Tecumseh. Wilson Lumpkin, after- wards Governor of Georgia, was present at a council between Tecumseh and the Creeks. Of course, he did not know what was going on. He tells us in his memoirs that he had hardly reached home from an extended tour in Mississippi before the Indians be- gan massacring the settlers. They committed many outrages among the settlements of lower Alabama and in Mississippi, the most distressing of which was the murder of men, women and children when they captured Fort MIms, In Alabama. Aroused by the 188 History of Georgia fate of the people at Fort Mims, the Southern states sent several expeditions against the Creeks, one of which was led by General Andrew Jackson, after- wards President of the United States, and another by General Floyd, commanding a force of Georgia mi- litia. The lower Creeks did not take part in this war and were careful to avoid hostile acts. General Jackson conquered the Creeks and obtained a treaty with them in 1814 by which they ceded a large body of land in central and southern Alabama, as well as the Tallassee country, or southern part of Georgia. This section of the state, however, was not held in high esteem, and there was great dissatisfaction in Georgia, where it was felt that the conduct of the Indians in the war afforded an excellent reason for compelling a cession of all their remaining lands in Georgia. Such a course, however, did not seem fair, in view of the fact that the Georgia Creeks had taken no part in the war. The Boundary Extended to the Flint River In 1 82 1, during the administration of Governor John Clarke, the Indian title to the country between the Ocmulgee and Flint Rivers was extinguished. After this cession the Creeks felt cramped for lands and declined to sell more territory, while the national government, falling back on the ''peaceable and rea- sonable terms" clause in the agreement of 1802, re- History of Georgia 189 fused to push matters. In 1823 George M. Troup^ was elected Governor of Georgia. His feeling on the subject of expelling the Indians from Georgia was very strong, and in a message to the Legislature he recomrnended that a protest be sent to the central government. This was done, and elicited from Pres- ident Monroe the opinion that ''the Indian title was not affected in the slightest circumstance by the com- pact with Georgia, and that there is no obligation on the United States to remove the Indians by force." Governor Troup maintained, on the contrary, that "the words 'as soon as may be' in the articles of agree- ^ George M. Troup, whose untiring activity resulted In the final expulsion of the Creeks, was one of the most interesting men of his time. Born In 1780, In Alabama, then a part of Georgia, his whole life was Identified with this state. He was graduated with distinction from Princeton, in 1797, one year after John M. Ber- rien, and two years before John Forsyth. Choosing the profession of law, Troup was admitted to the bar of Savannah In 1800. After three years In the Legislature, he went to Congress In 1806, holding his seat until 181 5. During the heated discussions grow- ing out of the Yazoo speculation, he strongly denounced at every opportunity any proposition to settle the claims of the holders of scrip. During the War of 181 2, Troup was chairman of the Military Committee of Congress. In 1816, he was elected United States Senator, but resigned two years later, desiring to retire to private life. His friends, however, would not allow Troup to enjoy his country place, and the next year we find him embarked on his eventful career in Georgia politics. As Governor, 1823 to 1827, Troup was principally concerned with the Creek Indi- dlans. He expressed himself more forcibly than any public man of his time on the question of state sovereignty ; so much so, in- deed, as to cause his political enemies In Georgia to make capital of his extreme attitude In this matter. 190 History of Georgia George Michael Troup. From an engraving lent by Mr. A. B. Caldnvell. ment and cession will not longer avail the United States anything; the operation of these has been long since estopped by time." In his opinion neither History of Georgia 19] party to the 1802 agreement contemplated that twenty years would elapse and find Georgia in possession of only about half of her reserved territory. The Final Cession The question of land cessions was now a critical one with the Creeks. They faced the alternatives of migrating west of the Mississippi in accordance with the wishes of Georgia, or of declining to relinquish more land. On this question the Creeks became di- vided. The Lower Creeks, under the leadership of a very intelligent half-breed chief, named William Mcintosh, decided in favor of removal; but the Up- per or Alabama Creeks, who constituted a majority of the Creek nation, opposed this course. President Monroe approved of negotiations with the Georgia Creeks for a cessi-on of lands in Georgia, provided that the cession be ratified by the whole Creek nation. The Georgia Creeks were assembled at Indian Springs, in February, 1825. They agreed to sell all of their lands in Georgia for $5,000,000 and an equal acreage west of the Mississippi. This treaty was sent to Washington, approved by the Senate and signed by the President, in March. The next month a party of the hostile Alabama Creeks surrounded the house of Mcintosh, set fire to it and shot the chief as he ran out. The friendly Creeks, panic stricken, fled to the white settlements for protection. 192 History of Georgia The government Indian agent was using his influ- ence against a cession, largely on account of his per- sonal enmity towards Governor Troup. He sent evi- dence to President Adams, who had just succeeded Monroe, that the treaty had been obtained from a very small minority of the Creeks, and President Adams ordered Governor Troup to have the surveys stopped. As soon as the treaty of 1825 was concluded Governor Troup had begun to run lines in the In- dian country so as to have the land ready for settle- ment after the departure of the Indians. The Presi- dent then summoned the Creek chiefs to Washing- ton, where in February, 1826, a treaty was made by which the Indians gave up all of their lands in Georgia, except a small strip on the Alabama line. The treaty provided that they were to have posses- sion until January i, 1827; but Governor Troup, against the protest of the President, had the surveys finished by October, 1826. The Governor ignored the Treaty of Washington and maintained the valid- ity of the Indian Springs treaty. The Washington treaty had made a small reservation of lands on the Alabama line, shown on the map. Governor Troup in January proceeded to survey this reservation. The Creeks protested to President Adams, who threat- ened to use military force, if necessary, to compel the Governor to keep out of the unceded land. Governor Troup met this threat by issuing an order, as com- mander in chief of militia, to the major generals, to History of Georgia 193 hold their commands in readiness. He intended to defend the state from invasion on the part of the United States. The President, however, did not carry out his threat. Instead, he persuaded the Creeks to cede the small strip of land remaining in their possession. This last treaty was concluded in 1827. Summary From the founding of the colony of Georgia to the final removal of the Creek Indians almost a century elapsed. The long residence of the Creeks in the state was due to the fact that in the eighteenth cen- tury there was no necessity for taking their lands, the population of Georgia being very small ; while in the nineteenth century the Indians, with the support of the general government, were slow in making cessions. Under the Federal Constitution the right of acquiring Indian land was taken away from the individual states and lodged in the hands of the President and Senate; and as the Indian nations were considered to be the rightful owners of the land, the government was averse from urging them to sell against their wishes. The result was a very gradual recession of the Indian frontier, land being ceded in narrow strips. It was due largely to the determined position taken by Governor Troup that the Creeks were forced to cede their last territory in this state in 1826 and 1827. The Oconee River is the dividing line between 194 History of Georgia the two systems of land distribution. East of that stream the Head Rights system was used; the land to the west was given away under the Land Lottery scheme. Additional Reading: Acquisition of the Creek Lands: Phillips, U. B., Georgia and State Rights, Chap. II. The Creek War: Harris, Joel Chandler, Stories of Georgia, pp. 184-198. McGillivray and Mcintosh, Harris, pp. 199-215. T-:";:- I 5^ '*i CHAPTER XVI GEORGIA AND THE CHEROKEE NATION OF INDIANS, 1783-1838 The Cherokees The Cherokee nation of Indians once possessed a vast territory/ Their boundaries were the Ohio River on the north, the Blue Ridge and the Kanaw^ha and Wateree Rivers on the east, the Creek lands on the south, while on the west their hunting grounds extended to the Tennessee River. At the time when the strife over their lands became acute in Georgia, this extensive domain had been reduced by treaties to a relatively small area, lying principally in north Georgia, though it reached into western North Caro- lina, east Tennessee and northeast Alabama. A cen- sus of the Cherokees taken in 1825 showed a total population of 13,563 Indians, 1,277 negro slaves, and in addition there were 220 whites living among them. Early Cessions A large number of treaties were entered into be- tween the federal government and the Cherokees, but only two or three extinguished claims in ^ See map, p. 16. 195 196 History of Georgia Georgia. A tract north of Broad River was ac- quired under the Colonial government. At the close of the Revolution the Cherokees w^ere compelled to give up a small tract of land. Between 1817 and 1 8 19, when about a third of the Cherokees migrated westward, the state acquired further land, though the cession was not important, as the majority of the mi- grating Indians were not from Georgia. Cherokee Land Not in Demand until about 1820 There was not an insistent demand during the early years of the century for Cherokee lands. The invention of the cotton gin had given a tremendous impetus to the cotton industry, and the Creek lands were far more suitable for the production of that staple. But by 1820 the state authorities began to put pressure on the central government to carry out the agreement of 1802. An effort was made in 1823 to secure a cession, but the Cherokees felt that fur- ther cessions would necessitate their removal west of the Mississippi, and, as a majority was opposed to such a course, the nation declared that it would not cede any more land. Cherokees a Semi-Civilized People The Cherokees had during the first quarter of the last century to some extent abandoned savage modes of life and were making progress in civilization. The Federal government aided this change in every way History of Georgia 197 it could. With the increase in population and the gradual encroachment of the white man, game was disappearing, and the Indians were forced to become herdsmen and agriculturists. The government sup- plied them with hoes, rakes, plows, looms, cards and spinning wheels. The more intelligent Indians had taken advantage of the aid extended by the govern- ment and were showing capacity for civilization. A report made to the War Department in 1825 says that industrial and commercial life was flourishing among the Cherokees; population increasing; schools being established, and aiTairs in general in an en- couraging condition. In 1829 General Carroll toured Cherokee land at the President's request. He reported that ''the advancement the Cherokees had made in morality, religion, general information and agriculture had astonished him beyond measure. They had regular preachers in their churches, the use of spirituous liquors was in great degree prohib- ited, their farms were worked much after the man- ner of the white people and were generally in good order." In 1827 the Cherokees set up a written constitu- tion, modeled on the Federal Constitution. In this document they claimed independence as one of the distinct nations of the earth, much to the disgust of Georgians. Governor Forsyth protested to the Pres- ident against "the erection of a separate government within the limits of the sovereign state." 198 History of Georgia Progress of Cherokees Due to Presence of Whites This progress of the Cherokees in civilization was due in large measure to the presence of half-breeds among them. During the Revolution many Tories had refugeed in Cherokee land, married Indian women and raised up families. Governor Wilson Lumpkin visited the Cherokees in 1825 and found that those people who were pursuing civilized branches of business were of white blood. He says, ''But truth requires the statement of the fact that from the year 1825 to the final removal of the Chero- kees, in 1840,^ the great body of common Indians, who resided in obscurity and had but little inter- course with the white and half-breed races amongst them, still remained in brutal and savage ignorance."^ The chiefs, who exercised almost autocratic author- ity, were almost invariably half-breeds and had Eng- lish names. John Ross, the most powerful of their chiefs, was a half-Scot, a man of unusual mental ca- pacity, well educated, and a fluent writer and speaker. Major Ridge and John Ridge were also great half-breed chiefs. These men controlled the political life of the Cherokees, were the recipients of large government bounties, and when treaties were made, got the bulk of the money paid for lands. ^ The records show that the Cherokees left in 1838. - Lumpkin, Wilson, Removal of the Cherokee Indiafis from Georgia, I, p. i88. History of Georgia 199 Georgia Extends the Jurisdiction of her Laws Over the Cherokees The determination of Governor Forsyth and the people of Georgia to prevent the establishment of an independent Cherokee Nation within our borders found expression in 1828, when the Legislature passed an act extending the jurisdiction of the state laws and courts over the Cherokee country. Two years later it was made illegal for any council of the Cherokees to convene, their courts to sit or processes to be executed. If this legislation were upheld, it meant, of course, the extinction of the Cherokee Na- tion. President Jackson approved the course taken by Georgia. The intelligent chiefs of the nation, seeing that no help could be expected from the Presi- dent, appealed to the Supreme Court. They em- ployed counsel, and in 1830 applied for an injunc- tion to restrain the state from carrying into effect the legislation of 1828 and 1830. Cherokee Nation vs. The State of Georgia The decision of the court in the noted case of the Cherokees against Georgia was handed down in 1 83 1. The petition for an injunction was denied on the ground that the court had no jurisdiction. For the Cherokees to be competent to sue in the Supreme Court, it was necessary for their counsel to prove that they were a state. The court held that while the plaintiff's counsel had proved that the Indian tribes 200 History of Georgia had always been treated by the national government as states, and while treaties made with them had rec- ognized them as "people capable of maintaining the relations of peace and war, of being responsible in their political character for any violation of their engagements," yet they certainly were not states of the Union nor foreign states within the meaning of the Constitution. Chief Justice Marshall, who spoke for the court, said, "They may, more correctly, per- haps, be denominated domestic dependent nations." Mr. Justice Baldwin concurred. In his view, if the Cherokees were pronounced a state, capable of suing, then all the Indian tribes, of which there were hun- dreds, would be states, and the Supreme Court would speedily be flooded with suits brought by the Indians against the states. From the majority opinion Mr. Justice Thompson and Mr. Justice Story dissented. They held that the Cherokees were clearly a sover- eign state within the meaning of the Constitution. The decision, it will be observed, did not pass upon the real issue, the constitutionality of Georgia's course in extending the jurisdiction of her laws over the Cherokees. The case had simply been thrown out of court by the decision that Cherokees were not competent to sue in the Supreme Court. Worcester vs. The State of Georgia The Cherokee question became more critical in 1829 when valuable gold mines were discovered in History of Georgia 201 Cherokee land. By the summer of 1830 three thou- sand white men had come to the Indian country. They were a vicious, profligate lot of men, and, freed from the restraints of civilized society, created much disorder with their gambling, drinking and carous- ing. In December the Legislature of Georgia passed an act making it illegal for any white man to live in Cherokee land after March, 1831, unless a permit were obtained from state authorities. A man named Worcester, a missionary, refused either to leave Cherokee land or to get a license to remain there. He was tried for illegal residence before the Gwin- nett County Superior Court and sentenced to four years in the penitentiary. He refused a pardon of- fered by Governor Gilmer, if he would promise not to repeat the offense. His sympathies being with the Cherokees, he preferred to test the constitutionality of Georgia's course in passing laws to be enforced in the country of the Indians. This case was tried be- fore the United States Supreme Court in October, 1 831, being taken up on an appeal from the lower court. The court now had a chance to pass upon the constitutionality of the acts of Georgia against the Cherokees, and a decision was handed down declar- ing the acts unconstitutional, on the ground that the "Cherokee Nation is a distinct community, occupy- ing its own territory, with boundaries accurately de- scribed, in which the laws of Georgia can have no force." 202 History of Georgia President Jackson Refuses to Enforce the Decision The Cherokees thought for a moment that they had at last won in their long struggle against the state, but they had not taken into consideration the peculiar character of President Jackson. That ex- traordinary man simply refused to execute the deci- sion of the Supreme Court. "John Marshall has made his decision; now let him enforce it," he said. Several years before he had laid down his guiding principle on this subject when he said that "the arms of the United States would never be employed to stay any state of the Union from the exercise of the legitimate powers belonging to her in her sovereign capacity." Governor Wilson Lumpkin In the fall of 1831 Wilson Lumpkin^ became Gov- ernor of Georgia. His name had long been con- nected with the strife over Cherokee land. As a ^Wilson Lumpkin (1783-1870), was born In Virginia, his par- ents migrating along with many other Virginians to Georgia in the latter part of the eighteenth century. The Lumpkins settled in Oglethorpe County. Wilson Lumpkin was a self-educated man. While he was growing up, he read all the literature of a serious nature that was available., His political career began in his twenty-first year, when he was elected to the state legislature. He held every office within the gift of Georgians, state senator, governor, congressman, and United States senator. No governor has ever sent to the legislature abler messages, covering so wide a range of topics. He was keenly interested In railroads, public education and the acquisition of the Indian lands. History of Georgia 203 Wilson Lumpkin. Reproduced by permission from "Removal of the Cherokee Indians from Georgia," edited by Mr. JV. J. DeRenne. 204 History of Georgia member of Congress from 1827 to 1831, he had suc- ceeded in getting through both houses a bill to settle west of the Mississippi all Indians remaining in the East. His policy as Governor dififered radically from that of his predecessor, Governor Gilmer. The lat- ter favored the extension of the jurisdiction of Georgia laws over Cherokee land, but had discounte- nanced the actual settlement of the Indian lands by whites until a cession was obtained. Governor Lump- kin, on the other hand, believed it to be impractica- ble to enforce Georgia laws and government over Cherokee land without a better population. The laws had been violated and the offenders had escaped because there were not enough respectable white men in the Indian country to maintain the laws. He, therefore, advocated the immediate survey and dis- tribution of Cherokee land under the lottery system. It was not proposed by the Governor to take away any lands or improvements actually used by the Cherokees, but to introduce a white population to take up those parts of the country which were not occupied. The Legislature adopted the Governor's ideas and in 1831 authorized the survey and distribu- tion. The survey was completed In 1832 and the drawing of lots finished In May, 1833. In accord- ance with the act of 1832, Cherokee land was divided into the ten counties of Forsyth, Lumpkin, Union, Cobb, Cherokee, Gilmer, Cass, Murray, Floyd and Paulding. In his annual message of 1833 Governor History of Georgia 205 Lumpkin mentions the fact that a settled freehold white population was to be found all over Cherokee land. In all these acts the Governor met with violent opposition from his political opponents in Georgia and from sentimentalists over the entire Union. He was incessantly annoyed and obstructed in his course by the Cherokee chiefs and their lawyers. Final Treaty, 1835 Finding that no relief had come from the decision of the Supreme Court, a strong white population having occupied large parts of their land, and un- able to maintain their government, a faction of the Cherokees decided that it would be best to give up the struggle and migrate west of the Mississippi. The nation split into two parties on this question. The treaty party was led by the Ridges and Elias Boudinot. Boudinot was editor of the Cherokee Phoenix, a newspaper which had begun publication at the Cherokee capital several years before Gov- ernor Lumpkin's term of office began. The opposi- tion was headed by John Ross. Both parties, in 1835, sent delegations to Washington. The Ridge delega- tion went to negotiate a treaty; the Ross faction to protest against a cession. In March, 1835, ^ treaty was made between the government and the Ridge party, with a provision that the treaty was to be bind- ing only after it had received the sanction of the ,?0(> Jlistory of (Jior\^i• o { ^ / <*^- ^ { ^ — vr'X ^ <<> J o ■ / j ..^^^ o k '%o«^ ^^ > V ^ \ > — ^^( J P> /(-— 1 ( ( V-T 3r r-5""^ « 0^ kj V\ -V ^{J^ ^ \5- \ \i. Mjl ^<^ \ \V ^ — ^ 240 History of Georgia first legislation affecting the status of slavery in the West was the Northwestern Ordinance of 1787. which excluded slavery from the soil north of the Ohio River and east of the Mississippi. There was practically no opposition from any quarter to this Ordinance, but a serious sectional conflict came with the question of admitting Missouri. In 1819 there were eleven free and eleven slave states. Missouri desired to enter as a slave state. The North was unwilling to disturb this balance so as to give the South control over the Senate, and besides was strongly disinclined to see slavery cross the Missis- sippi River. The question was finally compromised by the creation of a new state, Maine, within the borders of Massachusetts and admitting it as a free state, by admitting Missouri as a slave state, and by a provision that no more slave states should be created in the Louisiana Purchase north of the southern boundary of Missouri. This arrangement was a decided victory for the cause of free labor, for only a few states could be made from that part of the Louisiana Purchase which lay south of Missouri. The sectional balance was restored by the admis- sion of Texas as a slave state in 1845. The Texas question was the leading issue in the presidential campaign of 1844. New England and the North generally fought the admission of this immense state, feeling that the slaveholding interest would thereby receive too great an accession of strength. But the History of Georgia 2-11 Democratic Party was successful, Polk was elected, and Texas admitted the next year. Compromise of 1850 In 1846 a war broke out with Mexico over a dispute as to the boundary between Texas and Mexi- co. The United States not only carried her point as to the boundary, but took occasion to seize the Mexican provinces of California and New Mexico, paying for them $15,000,000. Of course, the slavery question had to be dealt with anew. So strained had the feeling between the sections now become that war might have resulted. Senator Clay came forward with the last of his compromise measures. While the matter of slavery in the new territory was being discussed, gold was discovered in California, the ter- ritory filled rapidly, and applied for admission as a free state. Clay's compromise admitted California with a constitution prohibiting slavery, organized the remainder of the Mexican cession into the Terri- tories of Utah and New Mexico, with nothing said as to slavery, and enacted a rigid law to compel the North to return to the South runaway slaves. The principle applied to Utah and New Mexico was a new one. Theretofore Congress had deter- mined whether a given territory should be free or slave; but now the people who might move to Utah and New Mexico were to be given the privilege of settling this important matter for themselves. This 342 History of Georgia Howell Cobb. From an engraving lent by Mr. A. B. Caldivell. was known as "popular sovereignty" or "squatter sovereignty." To the nation at large Clay's Compromise seemed the best practical solution of History of Georgia 243 the quarrel, and most of the prominent statesmen favored it, among others Calhoun and Webster; and in Georgia, Howell Cobb\ Robert Toombs and Alexander H. Stephens. These three men were at that time representatives from Georgia in Congress, Cobb being the Speaker of the House. Clay's Compromise in Georgia Georgians were at first inclined to oppose the Com- promise on the ground that it was unfair to the South. A convention was called by Governor Towns in 1850 to discuss the subject. The situation was critical: radical action on the part of Georgia would have gone far to inflame the entire South, as the ^ Howell Cobb was born in Jefferson County, Georgia, in 181 5. Nine years after graduation from the University of Georgia, he entered Congress in 1843, retaining his seat until 1851. Though only twenty-eight years of age, Mr. Cobb in a short time became distinguished in Congress for his familiarity with the rules and his skill in debate. He was before long the recognized leader of the Southern Party, and was elevated to the Speakership in 1849. On the expiration of his term as Governor, 1851 to 1853, Cobb returned to Congress. He was an adherent of Buchanan, stumped the North in his interest in 1855, and on Buchanan's election, be- came Secretary of the Treasury. This post he resigned on the eve of the Civil War. Throughout the stormy days of secession, How- ell Cobb was a man on whom the attention of the nation was fixed. His powerful influence counted heavily in the decision of the South to secede from the Union. After four years of service as a Major-General in the Confederate Armies, Cobb spent the rernaining three years of his life in fighting the reconstruction policy of Congress. He died suddenly in 1868, while on a visit to New York. 344 History of Georgia position of Georgia statesmen was at that time a commanding one. Toombs, Stephens and Cobb, though strong ''state rights" men, thought the Com- promise the best that could be obtained in the way of a settlement of the controversy, and, in their desire to stem the tide setting towards war, took the stump in Georgia with the view of creating public senti- ment for the measure. The result was a happy one. The convention which had been summoned for the purpose of protesting against the Compromise, turned out to have a majority of Union men as dele- gates. Instead of doing anything that might have widened the growing breach between the sections, the convention adopted the "Georgia Platform," which declared for the Compromise, but stated that that measure was as far as the people of Georgia would go. It has been the opinion of historians that this action of Georgia probably deferred civil war for ten years. Under the leadership of our state, public opinion throughout the South set in an op- posite direction, and the sentiment in favor of secession was for a time quieted. Howell Cobb Elected Governor The gubernatorial campaign of the following year was fought over the Compromise. The advocates of the measure, principally members of the Whig Party, organized a new party called the Constitu- tional Union Party. Howell Cobb announced for History of Georgia 245 governor as their candidate. The opponents of the measure also organized a new party, known as the Southern Rights Party. Of this organization, Charles J. McDonald was the candidate. McDonald had already twice been governor of Georgia, having been elected as the candidate of the Union Party. It is significant of the changes that were coming that this eminent man should now run a third time, but on totally different principles. Cobb was elected by the great majority of 18,000 votes, a remarkable indication of the sentiment for peace in the state. Kansas-Nebraska Bill The peace secured by Clay's Compromise of 1850 was short-lived. Calhoun died in 1850, Clay and Webster in 1852. New men were assuming the leadership; they were tired of the compromises of the past and longed to see the momentous slavery issue settled forever. The fugitive slave law pre- vented good feeling between the sections; agitation against slavery was daily increasing. The last struggle between the sections over the West came in 1854, when Senator Douglas, a Northern Demo- crat, introduced a bill in the Senate providing for the organization of the Territory of Nebraska. Reference to the map will show that the whole of this vast territory lay north of the southern line of Missouri, and, therefore, under the terms of the Missouri Compromise was closed to slavery. But 246 History of Geor-gia Douglas' bill provided that any state or states organized in this territory should exercise their own choice as to slavery; that is to say, he desired to apply to this territory the principle of squatter sovereignty. Indeed, he claimed that the Com- promise of 1850 had repealed the Missouri Com- promise. A substitute bill was brought in, creating two territories, Kansas and Nebraska, and expressly repealing the Missouri Compromise. This bill passed both Houses, Southerners voting for a bill which gave them more than they had ever dreamed of asking, and the Northern Democrats blindly following Douglas. Since under the terms of this bill the people of the two territories were to settle the slavery question, North and South vied with each other in sending out immigrants to Kansas, so as to obtain the majority. A little civil war broke out between the Northern and Southern settlers. Dred Scott Decision (1858) A famous decision of the United States Supreme Court in 1858 still further favored the Southern contention in the matter of slavery. In deciding whether the slave, Dred Scott, should be given his liberty on the ground that his master had taken him into free territory, though afterward returning to a slave state. Chief Justice Taney, after rendering the Court's decision against the negro, went on to express the opinion that slaves were property and as such History of Georgia 247 were entitled to all the protection given by the Con- stitution to any sort of property. This decision threw open all the western territory to slavery, and sus- tained what had been the opinion of Southern states- men for half a century. Decline of the Whig Party In 1850 the Whig Party was strong, both North and South, but after that time the party rapidly broke up. The Northern and Southern wings of the party were estranged by the slavery issue. Southern Whigs began to desert the party and enter the Demo- cratic organization, which had become the strong- hold of Southern rights men. Without the aid of the South, the Whig Party could do nothing. The Kansas-Nebraska Bill hastened this movement to the Democratic Party in the South. In 1854 Toombs and Stephens, with a large following, went over to the Democrats. The Republican Party, 1856 Meanwhile in the North also the slavery conflict was breaking up the old party alignments. While the South was becoming solidly Democratic, in the North a new organization, called the Republican Party, sprang into existence, in 1856. The Republi- cans were openly hostile to Southern interests, especially slavery. Whigs constituted the leading element in this organization. In its first national convention to nominate a candidate for the presi- 248 History of Georgia dency, the Republicans declared that neither Congress, any Territorial Legislature, nor any other power had authority ''to give legal existence to slavery in any Territory while the present Constitu- tion shall be maintained." A clean cut issue was made when the Democratic Party in their conven- tion took their stand on the principle of absolute non-intervention on the part of Congress. The Democrats won the election, but the Republicans polled a heavy vote, carrying nearly all of the Northern states. The North had finally united on the issue of slavery. In the four years before the next presidential contest, the new organization gained strength rapidly. The Dred Scott decision, the continued trouble in Kansas, the attempt of John Brown to raise a slave insurrection in Virginia, and the fugitive slave law, all helped to increase sectional feeling. Summary At the time of the adoption of the Constitution, it was left to the individual state to decide whether or not it would allow slavery. It was not long, how- ever, before difference of opinion arose as to what should be the policy of the country in regard to slavery in the unorganized territory of the United States. Opponents of slavery maintained that as Congress had the right to make laws and regulations governing the territories, to prescribe their form of History of Georgia 249 territorial government, and the power to admit such territories as states or to refuse so to admit them, it necessarily followed that Congress had the power to legislate on the slavery question. Those who desired the extension of slavery declared that the Constitution guaranteed the protection of property, that slaves were property and that it would be an unfair discrimination against the South's peculiar form of property to prevent a Southerner from migrating to the West and taking his slaves with him. As a matter of fact, however. Congress did decide the slavery question a number of times; for instance, in 1820, when the Missouri Compromise was enacted. In 1850, however. Congress changed its time-honored policy and decided to leave the determining of the slavery question to the inhabi- tants of the territories; and in 1858 the Supreme Court denied that Congress had any control whatever over the territories in this respect. The fight over the extension of slavery gradually broke up the old party alignments, and by the time of the Civil War most of the Northern people had entered the Repub- lican Party, while the majority of Southerners had become Democrats, the main point of difference be- tween them being the question of Congressional control over slavery in the territories. Additional Reading. Sketches of Toombs, Cobb, Stephens, Nisbet: Northen, W. J., Men of Mark in Georgia, III. John Brown's Raid: Evans, L. B., Essential Facts of American History, pp. 358-359. CHAPTER XX SECESSION Rift in the Democratic Party While the Republican Party was solid and united in i860, the Democrats in their convention at Charleston, S. C, were unable to agree on principles or candidates. The Southern members tried to force the convention to stand by the Dred Scott decision, according to which Congress was obliged to give pro- tection to slave property in the territories. The ma- jority of the delegates w.ere Northern or Douglas Democrats and they would go further than to assert the doctrine of squatter sovereignty, namely, that the majority of the settlers in a territory should decide the slavery question. Unable to secure favorable action, the Southern members withdrew. Both the regular convention and the ^'bolters" put out a ticket, the Northern wing nominating Stephen A. Douglas of Illinois for the presidency and Herschel V. John- son, of Georgia, for vice-president. The Southern wing of the party nominated for president, Senator John C. Breckinridge, of Kentucky, vice-president during Buchanan's administration, and Joseph Lane, of Oregon, for vice-president. 250 History of Georgia 251 The break in the Democratic ranks marked the fall of the last national organization. Slavery had split all the church organizations, had killed the Whig Party and the American or Know-Nothing Party, and now the Democrats had finally drifted on the rocks. A third party known as the ''Constitu- tional Union Party," whose principle was to oppose radical action on either side of the controversy, also put out a ticket, and the division in the Democratic ranks assured the election of Abraham Lincoln, the Republican nominee, though the combined opposi- tion vote outnumbered his by almost a million. Secession Follows Lincoln's Election In the eyes of Southerners, Lincoln's election meant that the government of the country would be in the hands of men determined not to give them equal rights under the Constitution. This was the first time in the history of the Union that a section as such had elected a president on a programme of open enmity to another section. The South believed that her interests and rights would receive no con- sideration whatever from the Republicans. President Lincoln assured Alexander H. Stephens in a letter that the Republican Party had no idea of interfering with slavery in the states. Stephens replied that the disquietude of the South did not arise from fear that slavery in the states would be attacked; but from the fact that the triumphant Republican Party had as 252 History of Georgia its central idea the denial to Southerners of equal rights in the settlement of the West. He said: 'The leading object seems to be simply, and wantonly, if you please, to put the institutions of nearly half the states under the ban of public opinion and national condemnation.^'^ Secession Not a Southern Invention In the early days of the Union, the right of seces- sion, or voluntary and peaceful withdraw^al from the Union, w^as generally recognized. The original thirteen states had voluntarily entered into the Union. There w^as no compulsion in the matter: a state's right to remain outside of the Union had been conceded. It w^as just as freely admitted that a state could w^ithdraw^, if she felt that the Union brought her more disadvantage than benefit. In 1814 the New England States sent delegates to Hartford to discuss the advisability of seceding on account of their opposition to the War of 1812, which was crip- pling New England's commerce. In 1843, John Quincy Adams, a former president of the United States, had stated that in his opinion the admission of Texas would fully justify disunion; and again in 1845, William Lloyd Garrison, the abolitionist, had suggested that Massachusetts lead a secession move- ment. Secession was not, therefore, a southern invention. ^ Stephens, A. H., War Between the States, II, p. 266. History of Georgia 253 Northern Opinion Changes : Southern Opinion Remains Fixed Why, then, was the North willing to go to war in i860 in order to preserve the Union? It is not difficult to find an answer. Since the formation of the Union twenty new states had been added. The new states of the North and West had been peopled by immigrants from Europe, who poured into this country by thousands after 1842. The years 1846 and 1847 had been famine years in Ireland, while in 1848 many Eu- ropean countries were involved in political revolu- tions. From 1849 to i860 immigrants came in at the rate of 300,000 per annum. These men fled to escape famine or despotism; they came to a land of Canaan, where political equality was tendered every man, where his children might receive an education, and where religious liberty was a matter of course. They came not to any individual state; indeed, the very names of the states were doubtless unknown to them; but they came to the Union, and naturally were ready to fight for the Union in 1861. The new states of the Southwest, however, had been peopled by planters moving westward with their slaves. No part of the immigration from Europe reached the South, since the foreigners were unwilling to go to a section where labor was said to be degraded by slavery. The new states of the North and West were much more populous and wealthy than the new states 254 History of Georgia of the South. The main strength of the Union dur- ing the Civil War came from the West. The im- mense foreign population of the West knew nothing of the great constitutional argument over secession, while the planters in going to the Southwest had car- ried with them not only their slaves, but the political ideals of the fathers of the Republic. The other factor in the growth of nationalism in the North was the development of railroads and the spread of manufacturing. These agencies reduced distances, brought the people of widely separated states into closer contact, and promoted community of interests. The South, largely cut off from all these movements, very naturally retained the political views of the framers of the Constitution; and while in their view secession was an incontestable right under the Constitution, the mass of voters in the North had grown away from the idea. Not a War Against Slavery The Civil War was not a war primarily for the preservation or destruction of slavery. Woodrow Wilson says, '^Had the war been short and immedi- ately decisive for the Union, the federal power would not have touched slavery in the states."^ The emancipation of the slaves in 1863 was a war meas- ure, pure and simple, without legality, and intended ^Wilson, Woodrow, Division and Reunion, p. 226 (in Epochs of American History). History of Georgia 255 to Stimulate the Northern forces. The slow progress of the war, conscription of soldiers and the rioting it occasioned, and the interruption of commerce, had caused opposition in the North to the war. The zeal of the North was flagging. Lincoln emancipated the slaves with the idea of instilling new purpose into the hearts of his soldiers. He also intended to put the South on the wrong side of a moral question, that is to say, to make the war a moral rather than a political struggle, and thus deprive the South of the sympathy and possible assistance of foreign powers. Of course, slavery was at the bottom of this instance of the assertion of the right to secede, and to that extent was the cause of the war; but any other sectional conflict might have brought secession. The i860 Election in Georgia In the presidential contest of i860 the mass of Georgia ballots were cast for Breckinridge and Lane, representing the extreme Southern views. Some of our strongest men supported Douglas, others. Bell. A. H. Stephens, E. A. Nisbet and Hiram Warner were Douglas men, while Benjamin H. Hill was the most important supporter of Bell and Everett, on the Constitutional Union ticket. The result of the election showed 51,893 votes for Breck- inridge and Lane; 42,855 for Bell and Everett, while Douglas and Johnson were a bad third with 11,580. These numbers may be taken as an indication of the 256 History of Georgia Strength of the union sentiment in the state as op- posed to the secession feeling. The pronounced southern rights men voted for Breckinridge and Lane; the moderates for Bell and Everett or Douglas. Stephens and the Union Cause Though the election of Lincoln increased the agitation for secession, there was a strong element in Georgia against disruption. A number of counties sent to the legislature resolutions against disunion. Such powerful leaders as Stephens/ Hill, H. V. ^ Alexander Ha?niIton Stephens ranks among the leading states- men of the ante-bellum period. Feeble in body, unfitted for the hardships of the camp, his fame was largely won on the floor of Congress and in the realm of constitutional history. His two-vol- ume work called "The War Between the States" has been pro- nounced the most authoritative exposition of the Southern side of the causes which produced the great struggle. Stephens was born in Taliaferro County in 1812. He was very poor and obtained his education at the University of Georgia with the assistance of a church society. He was graduated with first honors in 1832. His first political activity was in opposition to Nullification, as tending to disrupt the Union. Stephens's first speech in the Legislature of Georgia secured the passage of the bill for the establishment of the Western & Atlantic Railroad. Entering Congress in 1843, when the agitation over the extension of slavery was at its height, Steph- ens came into prominence for his advocacy of measures which seemed to him to promote the cause of the Union. With Cobb and Toombs, he threw the weight of Georgia in favor of Clay's com- promise. He defended the principle of squatter sovereignty. Though opposed to the War, when the die was cast, he followed his State and became a leader in the councils of the new government. After the War, Stephens was elected Professor of Political Science History of Georgia 257 Alexander Hamilton Stephens. From an engraving lent by Mr. A. B. Cald'well. 258 History of Georgia Johnson, and Dr. Lovick Pierce opposed secession. Stephens made the most notable effort of his life in his speech before the Georgia legislature on November 14, 1860/ His argument represents the viewpoint of Southern unionists more clearly than any other utterance of the time. In brief, he said: The con- stitutional election of no man to the office of president is a sufficient excuse for secession. We are pledged to maintain the Constitution, and to withdraw for such a reason would put us in the wrong. It has been said that President Lincoln's principles and policy are against the Constitution, and that if he carries them into execution it will be destructive of our rights. We must wait, however, and see what he will do, and not anticipate his actions. Speaking for myself, said Stephens, I do not expect Lincoln to do anything hostile to the South. There are many checks to prevent his acting in an arbitrary and un- constitutional manner. In the House there will be a majority of thirty against Lincoln, in the Senate a majority of four. Lincoln's election, then, is practi- cally a bugbear, so far as injuring the South is con- cerned. When it becomes definitely clear that the honor and equality of Georgia cannot be maintained and Historj' at the University of Georgia, but declined on account of ill health. On the recovery of his strength, he again entered Congress, in 1874, remaining until 1882. He was then made Gov- ernor of the State and died while in office. ^ Stephens, War Between the States, II, pp. 279-300. History of Georgia 259 Robert Toombs. From an engraving lent by Mr. A. B. CaldivelL 260 History of Georgia in the Union, then I am ready to withdraw. Stephens suggested that a convention be summoned in Georgia to decide the question of secession. Secession Convention, 1861 In accordance with Stephens's suggestion, a call was issued for the election of members to a State Convention. Of the Secessionists, Robert Toombs^ wielded the most powerful influence in the South at ^ Robert Toombs J in some ways the most striking figure In Georgia in the ante-bellum period, was born in Wilkes County, Georgia, in 1810. He died at the age of seventy-five at his home in Washington. He was a student, but not a graduate, of the University of Georgia. After preparation for the law at the Uni- versity of Virginia, he was admitted at twenty to the bar by a special act of the Legislature. Toombs entered Congress in 1844 as a Whig. His first speech compelled his recognition as one of the best debaters of that body. Laying aside for the time his extreme state rights convictions, Toombs advocated Clay's Com- promise of 1850 and contributed as much as any other single per- son to its adoption by the people of the South. Toombs was made United States Senator in 1853 ''^"^1 held the position until the War necessitated the withdrawal of all Southerners from Congress. He w^as a man of commanding personality and appearance, a born leader of men, an uncompromising fighter for what he be- lieved to be right. During the War, Toombs held a Commis- sion as Brigadier-General. He fled to Cuba. England and France at the end of the War, but returned in 1867. Never becoming reconciled to the result of the War, he declined to take the oath of allegiance to the United States, and died without having regained his political rights. He was a member of the Constitutional Con- vention of 1877, which made the Constitution which is still in force in Georgia, and in the Convention obtained the passage of a resolution which resulted in the establishment of the Railroad Commission. History of Georgia 261 ^ ^ VV/ ^^ \%^ r ^ ^ rscM \>^-=J ^ t ^^ ^m a fX^^ — W rr \j^ \ ^ ^^ v' ; \ wv-r i 1 L^n, ..KJ rVL- ^/^ ^m ^ ^V 1 1 / ^ — V- + ^ =^i * j^ =0 ^ t 5^ i V^'oTEs OF Delegates in the Secession Convention, Traced to the Coun- TIES Which They Represented. Shaded Counties for Secession ; White, Against; Those Marked + Divided Their Vote. Adapted from Phillips, U. B., "Georgia and State Rights." large. The other notable advocates of disunion were Howell Cobb, Thomas R. R. Cobb, Governor Joseph E. Brown, Francis S. Bartow and Eugenius 262 Histojy of Georgia A. Nisbet. The total vote cast in the election for delegates to this convention was 87,366. Of this num- ber 50,243 were for secession; 37,123 against seces- sion. A map of the vote shows that the bulk of the secession delegates came from the larger towns and sections where planter influence was predominant, and that the mountaineers and independent farmer element voted for the Union. The vote in the counties surrounding the residence county of indi- vidual leaders reflected the sentiment of the leaders, whether unionist or secessionist. The convention included in its membership prac- tically the whole of the sound and intelligent leader- ship of Georgia. Judge Nisbet introduced the resolution in favor of secession on January 18, 1861. Stephens and Johnson ofifered a substitute, proposing an ordinance inviting the Southern States to a con- vention; announcing the intention of Georgia to leave the Union, unless the Northern States would repeal statutes intended to nullify the fugitive slave law; and stating that Georgia would make common cause with the states that had already seceded, should an attempt be made to coerce them. The object of this substitute was to see whether the majority of the delegates were in favor of immediate secession or of temporizing. Nisbet's resolution was carried by a vote of 166 to 130.^ On the following day the Seces- 1 Phillips, U. B., Georgia and State Rights. Chap. VIII. History of Georgia 263 sion Ordinance was presented and passed by a vote of 208 to 89, many opponents of immediate secession casting their votes for the Ordinance, since it was certain to be carried. The disagreement among the delegates was not due to divergent opinions as to the right of secession, but rather as to the advisability of immediate action. Thomas R. R. Cobb and Secession Probably the most powerful argument made be- fore the people of Georgia and the convention in favor of immediate secession was that of Thomas R. R. Cobb:' "We can make better terms out of the Union than in it." In The War Between the States, Stephens expressed the opinion that at least two- thirds of the men who voted for the Ordinance of Secession did so not with any idea of war, but because they hoped to reestablish the Union on a sounder basis and believed this object could be best effected by ^ Thomas R. R. Cohbj the young brother of General Howell Cobb, was born in Jefferson County in 1823, and was killed at the battle of Fredericksburg, in Virginia, in 1862. He was gradu- ated with first honors from the University of Georgia in 1841. Though a man of remarkable mental gifts, Cobb did not enter pub- lic life until the secession movement began in i860. He was a lawyer by profession and devoted himself to active practice and to studies in connection with the law. His Digest of Georgia Laws was an able work, while the Civil Code of Georgia, of 1861, of which he was the principal compiler, was one of the first works of the kind ever issued. He also wrote a History of Slavery. But for Mr. Cobb's earnest advocacy, it may well be questioned whether Georgia would have seceded from the Union in 1861. 364 History of Georgia withdrawing from the Union and treating in the capacity of sovereign communities with the North-^ ern states. Montgomery Convention of the Seceded States As soon as the ordinance had passed, all Georgians united in support of secession. A convention of delegates from the seceding states met in Montgomery in February, 1861. Georgia sent ten delegates, among them Stephens, Toombs, Howell and T. R. R. Cobb, Bartow, Nisbet, and Hill. Stephens said that though he had been a member of sixteen Con- gresses, he had never been associated with an abler body of men. 'They were not such men as revolu- tions or civil commotions usually bring to the surface. They were men of substance, as well as of solid character, men of education, of reading, of refinement, and well versed in the principles of government." Georgians in the Confederate Convention Howell Cobb was made presiding officer of the convention. The election of a president of the Con- federacy was a delicate matter. It was generally expected that a Georgian would receive this honor and Robert Toombs seemed to be the logical man; but he declined to allow his name to go before the convention. The Georgia delegation then thought of proposing Howell Cobb, but It became known History of Georgia 265 that delegates from two or three states had expressed themselves adversely to him, on account of old party animosities. It was necessary to select a man who w^ould be able to command the support of all ele- ments, and Jefferson Davis was chosen as being a conservative man without political enmities of the sort that Howell Cobb had incurred. Stephens was made vice-president. Robert Toombs became the first secretary of state, but resigned in a few months to enter active service as a brigadier-general. An- other Georgian, Thomas R. R. Cobb, was appointed on the committee to draft the Constitution of the Confederacy, and the document was written by his hand. Summary The American people had been accustomed throughout the history of the Union to threats of secession. Secession was not by any means a Southern invention. It became apparent in i860 that it was impossible for the two sections of the country to con- tinue their quarrels indefinitely. The election of Lincoln was the signal for secession. Georgia was reluctant to withdraw from the Union; a large minority of the convention were in favor of some less drastic action. Alexander H. Stephens was the leader of the element opposed to immediate seces- sion. He thought the South should wait for some act of hostility on the part of the Republican Party 26Q History of Georgia and not anticipate trouble. As soon as the states of the lower South had withdrawn from the Union, representatives of the seceding states met in Mont- gomery to create a new Confederacy. Georgians took a prominent part in the work of this conven- tion, its president being Howell Cobb of Georgia. Additional Reading: Why Georgia withdrew from the Union: Smith, C. H., His- tory of Georgia, Chapter XXXV. Slavery and Secession: Harris, J. C, Stories of Georgia, pp. 251-258. Sketches of Stephens, Toomhs, Cobb, Nisbet, and others: Nor- then, W. J., Men of Mark. Vol. III. CHAPTER XXL A HALF CENTURY OF PROGRESS, 1810-1860 Population The fifty years preceding the Civil War was a time of great progress in Georgia. In those years the Indian frontier disappeared, and the entire region of North and Middle Georgia was settled. The population of the state increased from 252,433 in 1 8 10 to 1,057,286 in i860. Negroes were 44 per cent of the total population at the latter date. Most of the negroes were in the possession of the planters of the Black Belt and the coast. Non-slaveholders were not numerous in the Black Belt, as conditions were against them in that section. They lived prin- cipally in the great region north of the Belt. The mountainous regions of the extreme north and the pine barrens of South Georgia were very sparsely settled. Agriculture In 1 8 10 Georgia was a state of small farmers, except on the seacoast, where rice growing, being the principal industry, large plantations were to be found. During the succeeding fifty years cotton plant- 267 268 History of Georgia ing became the leading industry. The total number of farms in i860 was 62,003; the average size of the farms was 430 acres. As there were only 3,594 farms containing more than 500 acres, it is clear that there was a small number of large plantations, and a large number of small farms. This is as we would naturally expect, since the number of slaveholders was small in proportion to the total white population. While cotton planting tended to absorb the atten- tion of the farmers to the exclusion of diversified crops, the extent of this evil has been exaggerated. The statistics of i860 sufficiently disprove the idea that there was no diversification of farming. Of cotton, 701,840 bales were produced in i860, an in- crease of 40 per cent over the production of 1850. The Black Belt counties produced 82.87 per cent of all this cotton. Georgia also raised 2,544,913 bushels of wheat; 30,776,293 bushels of corn, besides quantities of dairy products, forage crops and vege- tables; while $10,908,204 worth of animals were slaughtered for food. Georgia ranked next to South Carolina as a rice producing state, raising 52,507,652 pounds in i860, nearly one-third of all the rice grown in the United States. Manufacturing Georgians were so deeply engrossed in producing cotton in i860 that little time or money was available for manufacturing enterprises. It was difficult to History of Georgia 269 set up successful manufactures for two reasons. In the first place, the capital which normally would have been invested in such industries was in Georgia and the South generally used to purchase slaves. And, secondly, even if capital had not been scarce, it was almost out of question to get sufficient labor to man the mills. Negroes could not be used in this work, foreign immigrants did not come to the South, and land was so plentiful that native born whites found it easy to possess a farm and be independent of the mill owners. In spite of these difficulties, cotton and woolen mills and iron works were estab- lished in Georgia as early as 1829. Most of them failed on account of the high price of labor. But by i860 considerable progress in this line had been made. The census of that year credits the state with 33 cotton mills, representing an investment of $2,126,103; employing 2,813 hands; with an annual product of $2,371,207 — an increase of 69.9 per cent over the returns of 1850. In this branch of industry Georgia ranked first among the Southern states. In the same year Massachusetts, the leading Northern state, had 217 cotton mills, with an annual output of $38,004,255. Only Virginia surpassed Georgia In the woolen industry in the South. Our state had eleven mills; Massachusetts, 134; Pennsylvania, 270; New York, 140; Virginia, 45. In addition, there were establishments in Georgia for manufacturing shoes, hats, carriages, wagons, 270 History of Georgia leather, flour, turpentine and many other articles. Industry was not so completely at a standstill as has sometimes been represented, but more floating capital and the presence of a more abundant labor supply enabled the North to outstrip the South in manu- facturing. Travel and Transportation Before the Era of Railroads As soon as the cotton industry began to transform Middle Georgia from a wilderness to a great staple- producing area, the need of better transportation became a pressing problem. The Piedmont region is peculiarly situated. Macon, on its southern edge, is nearly two hundred miles from the coast, and be- tween the Piedmont and the coast lay the vast unde- veloped pine barren region of southeast Georgia. The problem was to get cotton to the coast and supplies from the coast to the interior. On the north lay the mountainous section, wholly unde- veloped and without transportation facilities of any kind. As has been pointed out, the Piedmont is a hilly country in which the streams are rapid and unnavigable above the fall line. Under these condi- tions, there was only one solution of the difliculty, namely, the building of market towns at the ''heads of navigation," or the points at which the streams leave the hills and commence their long unbroken journey to the sea. Hence the importance of Au- gusta, Macon and Columbus. At these places mer- History of Georgia 271 chants established themselves and city life grew up. Rough country roads radiated into the agricultural regions about. In the fall the cotton planters hauled their cotton to the towns, sold it and obtained their supplies. River Transportation; Pole Boats From Augusta and the other similarly located towns regular lines of flatboats were employed in floating the cotton to the coast. Augusta sent her cotton directly to Savannah; from Macon and Mill- edgeville the cotton went to Darien, and thence to Savannah. These boats carried some five hundred bags of cotton. The return trip was painful toil, as the boats had to be forced slowly upstream by poles. Gangs of slaves were employed in this work, and about ten miles per day was made by a c^ew of fif- teen to twenty men. Augusta was by far the most important of the inland markets, handling the cot- ton of most of Georgia east of the Oconee River, as well as that of western South Carolina. Steamboats Robert Fulton invented the steamboat in 1807, and within ten years this new form of transportation was in use in Georgia. The first steamer to appear was owned by a Mr. Howard, of Savannah, who began the river service in 18 16. The Savannah Repub- lican, in April, 18 16, contained the following notice 272 History of Georgia of the opening of steamboat transportation on the Savannah River: "The Steamboat, Enterprise, with a numerous concourse of citi- zens on board, started from Howard's wharf yesterday morning at 12 o'clock on a party of pleasure. She moved beautifully through the water, and was certainly an interesting curiosity to those who have not seen steam vessels elsewhere. To behold a large and apparently unwieldy machine, without oars or sails, pro- pelled through the element by an invisible agency at a rate of four miles an hour, is indeed a novel spectacle." Steamboats, of course, greatly facilitated trade, as they made the trip to Augusta in four or five days and carried 800 to 1,000 bales of cotton, besides pas- sengers. The period of greatest steamboat activity was in the twenties, when ten to fifteen boats were engaged in the Savannah-Augusta trade. The freight rate was 37I4 cents to $1.00 per bale. The extent of Augusta's cotton business is indicated by the fact that as early as 1830 she had sixteen cotton warehouses. Her cotton receipts in 1825 were 143,- 633 bales; in i860 the receipts were much larger, though the exact number of bales is unknown. Macon was second as an interior cotton market. In 1826 the town received 47,065 bales; in i860, 102,000. The freight rate to Darien was 62% to 75 cents per hundred pounds. Savannah was the only port of importance. In 1 825- 1 826 she exported 190,578 bales of cotton; in i860, 314,084 bales. History of Georgia 273 Stage Coaches There was a net work of roads over Georgia early in the nineteenth century, connecting the principal towns. Regular schedules were published in the newspapers. From Augusta to the capital, Mill- edgeville, a coach ran six days in the week, the fare being $10.00. A similar charge was made from Mill- edgeville to Columbus. From Athens to Augusta the trip was made twice a week, at a charge of $7.00. The duty of keeping up the roads was in the hands of the local county authorities. In the early thirties the state worked a force of two hundred slaves under a superintendent in making and improving roads, but this was discontinued in 1835. Railroads The state was naturally retarded by the primitive methods of travel and transportation, and every one hailed with delight the proof that railroads were practicable. As early as 1831 a convention was held at Eatonton to discuss the feasibility of a railroad in Georgia. From that time on interest was unflagging. The earliest roads in Georgia were the Georgia, the Central of Georgia and the Western and Atlantic.^ The Georgia Railroad and Banking Company The plans which resulted in the building of the Georgia Railroad originated in Athens. The idea ^ Phillips, U. B., History of Transportation in the Eastern Cot- Ion Belt. Contains history of pre-raiiroad and railroad eras. 274 Histo?'y of Georgia was to connect with the Charleston and Hamburg Railroad, which had been completed in 1833 from Charleston to Augusta. A stock company was or- ganized and a charter obtained in 1833, the capital stock being one and a half millions. Mr. James Camak was the first president. Grading was begun in 1835, and by December, 1837, forty-two miles of An Early Railroad Train. From Coman, "Industrial History of the United States." rail had been laid. Post coaches were established to cooperate with the road. Passengers would leave Augusta, go as far as the rails extended and then transfer to the four-horse coaches for the remainder of the journey to Athens, Greensboro, Gainesville and other places. The line was completed to Greens- boro in 1838 and to Madison and Athens in 1841. Central of Georgia Railroad The Central of Georgia was largely the product of Savannah initiative. Our seaboard city became interested in railroads through fear that the road History of Geoj-gia 275 from Augusta to Charleston would result in Savan- nah's losing the Augusta trade. In 1833 ^ citizens' committee of Savannah, of which John McPherson Berrien was chairman, took up the matter. A char- ter was obtained in 1833, authorizing the construc- tion of a line to Macon. This road was a tremendous undertaking, as it was necessary to bridge over a great area of infertile and sparsely settled country, from which no revenue could be expected, before the rich piedmont was reached. Delays followed, and in 1836 a new charter was obtained. Mr. W. W. Gor- don was the first president. By May, 1838, sixty- seven miles of track had been completed. Macon was reached in 1843. The total cost of the 190 miles of track was $2,500,000. From Macon branch lines soon ran out to tap the rich agricultural regions of Middle Georgia. The Western and Atlantic The Western and Atlantic was built by the state of Georgia and is still a state-owned road. The project had its birth in a scheme to connect Georgia with the great West, as the name implies. The idea was to extend the Central from Macon and the Georgia from Union Point to meet at a point on the Chattahoochee River, the present site of Atlanta, and run the new road thence to Chattanooga on the Tennessee River. In this way it was hoped that Georgia would get part of the traffic of the West, 276 History of Georgia Chattanoopa \ AtR'ens Washinpton' O iatonton Forsyth' i^^' \\\e Thomasti vAugusta Pailroads of Georgia in i860. which at that time had not definitely been turned to Chicago and other northern cities. The work, authorized by a legislative act of 1836, was begun History of Georgia 277 in 1839 and completed, after many delays, in 1851. This road is 138 miles in length. The extensions of the Georgia and the Central to Atlanta were com- pleted in 1845. The development of railways in Georgia was very rapid. After these three main lines had been com- pleted, branches soon extended to the principal towns in every direction. The accompanying map shows the railway system of Georgia as it was in i860. Education. The Academy The material development of Georgia in the first half of the nineteenth century was far more rapid than her educational progress. There was no system of general public education in the state prior to the Civil War. A law dating back to Revolutionary times authorized the setting apart of wild lands in every county for the maintenance of academies. More than two hundred of these academies had been established before i860. In addition, there were a number of private academies. The academy was the counterpart of the modern high school and was supposed to give instruction in the higher branches, especially Latin, Greek and Mathematics. Some of these schools were excellent, but many were very inefficient. They were the constant object of criti- cism on the part of people interested in the educa- tional welfare of the state. 278 History of Georgia Old Field Schools The elementary schools of the rural districts were known as ''Old Field Schools." An eminent Georgian who attended one wrote an interesting de- scription of the institution/ We are told that the schoolhouse was usually a one-room log cabin, with a single door, two windows and hard benches for seats. School began early and lasted all day, with two hours in the middle of the day for dinner and sport. Spelling, reading and arithmetic, with a lit- tle geography, constituted the course of study. The pupils studied aloud, silence being taken to indicate idleness. Practice in declaiming was regular and the pupils were required to memorize a good deal of such literature as was available. The teachers were usually hopelessly ignorant of anything beyond the rudiments. They are represented as a wandering class of ne'er-do-wells, too lazy and worthless to make a living in any other way, and not commonly remaining in one school longer than a few months. They were petty tyrants, using the rod with great freedom. There was no state board to examine teachers to test their qualifications; they were paid no regular salaries, but depended upon fees paid by the pupils. ^ Johnson, Richard Malcolm, Early Educational Life in Middle Georgia. Report U. S. Comr. of Education, 1894-5, Vol. 2. History of Georgia 279 Poor School Fund Children whose parents were too poor to pay the tuition might take advantage of a "poor school fund," created by the legislature in 1817. This fund con- sisted of the interest on $250,000, which was divided among the counties in proportion to their white pop- ulation. At a later time, 1843, the county courts were authorized to levy an extra tax to supplement the state fund for educating the children of the poor. It was made the duty of the magistrates to report to the county courts the names of children in their districts who were entitled to the benefit of this fund. The scheme worked badly. Magistrates were lax in keeping proper rolls of those who should have re- ceived the fund; not more than three-fourths of the children of the poor ever got on the rolls, and not more than half of those enrolled entered the schools. It was felt to involve disgrace to accept this sort of aid. ''The very law subjects every patron of these schools to the jeer of pauperism," said a con- temporary writer. Consequently, in i860, there were in Georgia 16,900 men and 26,784 women of the white race who could neither read nor write. Manual Labor Schools A more hopeful movement was begun in 1833 with the establishment, near Greensboro, of a manual la- bor school, under the auspices of the Baptists of Georgia, to teach practical agriculture. This school 280 History of Georgia grew into Mercer University. A similar institu- tion was opened by the Presbyterians, near Athens, Mercer University, Main Building. also in 1833, but was removed to Gwinnett County. Two other manual labor schools were established in 1835, one located at Midway, near Milledgeville, History of Georgia 281 under Presbyterian control; the other at Covington, under Methodist control. The Midway school be- came Oglethorpe University. The Methodist school grew quickly into a position of some importance. An account of the institution written in 1837 says that when the school opened in 1835 there were thirty students and two teachers, and that in two years the students had increased to 120, including 76 boarders; there were five teachers, and the equipment consisted of 12 student houses, homes for the teachers and other buildings, worth altogether $14,000. The trustees owned 2,000 acres of land and a considerable amount of livestock. When Emory College was opened in 1838, this school was made a branch of the new college. The manual labor schools flourished in the thirties, but the vocational idea was soon abandoned, and the schools either developed into classical colleges or were discontinued. No con- temporary explanation has been found of the failure of this interesting experiment. Higher Education The roll of colleges in Georgia was rather formid- able before the war, as is now the case. The oldest of the men's colleges was the University of Georgia, chartered in 1784.^ Teaching actually commenced in 1 801. The Presbyterians in 1838 established Ogle- ^ See p. 133 for sketch of Abraham Baldwin, originator of the plan to found the Universit}^ 282 History of Georgia Emory College, Seney Hall. History of Georgia 283 thorpe University, near Milledgeville. This insti- tution closed its doors at the outbreak of the war, and was not revived afterward. Emory College dates from 1836, opening in 1838. Mercer's^ char- ter is dated 1837, the college opening two years later. For women there w^ere seven or eight colleges, the most important of which was Wesleyan, chartered in 1836, actual teaching beginning in 1839. The Supreme Court The Supreme Court of Georgia was organized in 1845, with Judge Joseph Henry Lumpkin as chief justice and Eugenius A. Nisbet and Hiram Warner as associates. Judge Lumpkin was a famous lawyer, a graduate of Princeton and founder of the Law School of the University of Georgia. Election of 1857 The last election held in Georgia before the com- mencement of the war was that of 1857. ^^ ^^^ Democratic convention a deadlock occurred between the adherents of the several candidates, Henry La- mar, Hiram Warner, John H. Lumpkin, James Gardner and William H. Stiles. A committee was appointed to select a candidate. Passing over the five candidates, the committee chose Joseph E. ^ Mercer University was so named in honor of the Reverend Jesse Mercer, a famous Baptist preacher, w^ho gave a large part of the money needed to establish the institution'. 284 History of Georgia Joseph Emerson Brown. History of Georgia 285 Brown/ a man almost unknown outside of his own section of the state, where he was a Superior Court judge. Benjamin H. Hill, a public man of great experience and a noted orator, was the candidate of the American or Know-Nothing Party. At first Hill's election was conceded, but as the campaign progressed men awoke to the fact that a man of ex- traordinary capacity had been discovered in Judge Brown. He was elected, and managed the affairs of Georgia during the troublous days of 1 860-1 866, serving eight consecutive years, probably a record for all time. Summary The fifty years preceding the Civil War was a period of progress in the state. The population in- creased very rapidly, especially in the cotton plant- ing districts, where negroes outnumbered whites. ^Joseph Emerson Brown (i 821-1894) was born in South Caro- lina, but his family moved to Georgia during the childhood of the future governor. In spite of many difficulties, Brown got several years' schooling, studied law while teaching and was admitted to the bar in 1845. He rose to the judgeship of the Superior Court, and was holding that place when he was nominated for governor. Governor Brown was regarded as one of the ablest of the war gov- ernors of the South. After the war he advocated submission to the triumphant North, and, though that was manifestly the wiser course, the governor lost his popularity. When the bitter feeling aroused by reconstruction days had passed, Georgians came to understand the wisdom of Governor Brown's position, and he was restored to the confidence of the people, as was evidenced by his election to the United States Senate. 286 History of Georgia Georgia produced not only an immense quantity of cotton, but much corn, wheat and other foodstuffs. She was, however, a heavy buyer of grain from the West. In manufacturing, though far behind the in- dustrial states of the North, Georgia had many more cotton mills and other factories than people ordi- narily suppose. Before the era of railroads most of the freight transportation was on the rivers. Steam- boats came into use during the twenties and after that time there was a rapid development of railroads. Very little attention was given to public education, schools were few in number and poorly equipped, with the result that illiteracy was common. Most of the important colleges of the state were opened in the ante-bellum period, but their development was retarded by the lack of a public school system. Additional Reading. The Farmer Boy of Gaddistown (Sketch of Joseph E. Brown) : Harris, Joel C, Stories of Georgia, pp. 259-271, CHAPTER XXII GEORGIA IN THE WAR BETWEEN THE STATES The South on the Defensive The South was on the defensive almost throughout the Civil War. Her advantage in this respect was more than offset by the superior resources of the North in men and wealth. The North grew greater and stronger with every year of the war, but the South drained herself of almost the last dollar to continue the hopeless struggle. General Plan of the War In the East the Federal armies were directed against Richmond, the capital of die Confederacy. Many notable battles were fought on Virginia soil. These were usually victories for the Southern armies under Lee and Jackson. Among the Georgians who fought in Virginia were James L. Longstreet, who attained the rank of lieutenant-general and partici- pated in the battle of Gettysburg; Brigadier General T. R. R. Cobb, killed at Fredericksburg; Lieutenant General John B. Gordon, who commanded a wing of Lee's army at Appomattox; and Brigadier General 287 288 History of Georgia Francis S. Bartow, killed at the first battle of Ma- nassas. In the West the Federal generals pushed down the valleys of the Ohio and Mississippi Rivers and up the valleys of the Tennessee and Cumberland, driv- ing a great wedge into the heart of the South and dividing her territory into two parts. Federal gun- boats cooperated with the armies to take the river towns and forts. It was slow work, because the resistance of the South was heroic at every step. Among the Georgians who achieved high rank in the West were Major General Joseph Wheeler and Major General W. H. T. Walker. General A. R. Lawton was made quartermaster general of the Con- federate army in 1863. War Reaches Georgia It was only at the close of the struggle that inva- sion reached this state. Sherman's march to the sea constituted practically the only movement in Georgia, including in that march the preliminary campaign in northwest Georgia. In 1864 the Confederacy was tottering to its fall. By that time the crisis of the struggle had passed, with the fall of Vicksburg on the Mississippi and the battle of Gettysburg. All the seaports had fallen and the South was shut off from commerce. Her cotton could not be sold, but was being piled up by thousands of bales at the ports. In Georgia the people went back to home manufac- History of Georgia 289 tured clothes, less cotton and more meat and grain v/ere produced. Coffee, tea and other luxuries were unattainable and such necessities as salt very hard to get. Sherman conceived the Georgia expedition with the purpose of destroying the military resources still left in the state. As he said, ''The utter destruction of its roads, houses and people will cripple their mil- itary resources." Sherman entered Georgia in May, 1864, with nearly 100,000 men. He was opposed near Dalton by General Joseph E. Johnston with a force of 50,000. This force later received a re-en- forcement of 14,000 men. By flank movements Gen- eral Sherman compelled Johnston to fall back until he reached the mountains around Marietta. Here Johnston made a stand for twenty-three days of con- stant fighting, losing 10,000 men, while Sherman's loss amounted to 25,000. Early in July Sherman made another move to cut Johnston off from his base of supplies, and the Confederate commander with- drew towards Atlanta. On July 17th President Da- vis made the great mistake of superseding Johnston by Hood. General Hood was rash and impetuous. He abandoned Johnston's cautious tactics, repeat- edly attacked Sherman's immensely superior forces and was repulsed with heavy losses. Finally com- pelled to evacuate Atlanta^ instead of withdrawing southward, he led his army towards Tennessee, hop- ing to allure Sherman into following. Sherman, 290 History of Georgia however, detached a part of his army to take c^re of Hood and prepared for his long march. Burning of Atlanta As soon as Atlanta was taken Sherman issued an order requiring the inhabitants to leave within five days. Hood protested against this order and the mayor and council appealed to him to rescind it, stat- ing that the bulk of the inhabitants were women and children, whose forcible expulsion would entail end- less hardship and suffering. To this communication Sherman replied:^ "I have read it [the petition] carefully, and give full credit to your statements of the distress that will be occasioned, and yet shall not revoke my orders, because they were not designed to meet the humanities of the case." When all prep- arations for the southward march had been made Sherman set fire to the city. Sherman's conduct on this occasion has been condemned by Northern as well as Southern writers. It has been pointed out that Grant did not find such measures necessary at Vicksburg, Rosecrans at Chattanooga, Burnside at Fredericksburg, nor Butler at New Orleans. The March Begins In preparing for the march to the sea Sherman left behind all disabled or ineffective men and made ^ Sherman, W. T., Memoirs, II, p. 125. History of Georgia 291 up a fine army of 60,000 seasoned veterans, of whom 5,000 were cavalry. The army was to sustain itself on the country. Each brigade had an organized party of foragers, called ''bummers." These bummers were authorized to take all necessary provisions, horses and mules, but were ordered not to enter dwellings or commit any trespass. In districts where the army was not opposed, mills, cotton gins and houses were not to be molested; but they were to be destroyed where the march was interrupted. Forag- ing parties were ordered to refrain from threatening or abusive language, and a portion of goods was to be left to each family. These orders were very badly obeyed, the soldiers apparently being encouraged to believe they were at liberty to do as they pleased, but credit must be given to Sherman for having issued these instructions. Atlanta to Milledgeville The first objective point in the march was the cap- ital, Milledgeville. Sherman divided his army into two divisions. The right wing under General O. O. Howard was sent along the railroad via Jonesboro and McDonough, with orders to make a feint on Macon, and stop at Gordon, on the Central of Georgia Railroad. The left wing, under General H. W. Slocum, went via Decatur and Covington to Madison. General Sherman accompanied the left wing. The army spread out, visiting the important 392 History of Georgia o Chattanooga Rome Dalton I ^ Reseca Calhoun vsville Vcav^e x?s'M J\^^ \c^^a A>^^ <>>?,^ Atlanta i< V .v^^ .^^* ^«», A^'^ ^4^" "-^. Gv\\V\^ ^.Monticello"^ ^0' ^sS" ^\\A-^ Augusta \:) plement by local taxation the state appropriation for schools. This provision has proved a powerful aid in the betterment of school conditions. Twenty-eight counties have (up to March, 1913) adopted the county-wide local tax, while 629 districts levy the extra assessment. In 191 1, $1,566,654.70 was the The Three Small Schools at the Top Were Recently Consolidated AND the Building at the Bottom Erected in Their Place. amount raised by local taxation. The total amount available for common schools in 191 1 was $5,282,- 651.68. The sums appropriated for higher and sec- ondary education raise this total to $6,183,768.37. In other words, the people of Georgia in 1911 used for educational purposes, through state and local taxation, a sum greater than the total amount of 346 History of Georgia taxes received by the Comptroller-General for all purposes in that year.^ Declining Percentage of Illiteracy The effect of this educational activity can be pointed to with pride. In 1870 27.4 per cent of our white people and 92.1 per cent of our colored popula- tion v^ere classed as illiterates. In 1910 the white illiteracy had fallen to 7 per cent and the colored to 36 per cent. When we recall the fact that only forty years ago there were no public schools and that the state did practically nothing for education, this prog- gress seems little short of miraculous. The advance- ment is all the more impressive in view of the chaotic political and economic conditions immedi- ately following the Civil War. At the present time while Georgia does not appear in a favorable light when compared with the most progressive of the Northern states, our progress in education has been far more remarkable, because the conditions have been adverse. One of the most important advantages the North has is in the matter of federal pensions. Whereas every Northern state receives millions each year from the national government, part of which is paid by the South in indirect taxes, the states of the South not only get nothing, but themselves ex- ^ The total receipts of the Comptroller-General in 191 1 were $5>558,446.36. History of Georgia 347 pend millions to support ex-Confederate soldiers. The pension fund in Georgia in 191 1 amounted to $1,199,149. A Professional State Board of Education Much has been done during the past two or three years in the direction of better systematizing our schools. Among the changes none is of more im- portance than the reorganization of the State Board of Education. The White Bill of 191 2 put the control of educational affairs in the hands of a new board, consisting principally of experts in education. The old board consisted of politicians who were only indirectly interested in educational matters. The State Superintendent of Education and the Governor are ex officio members of the new board. ^ The state has been fortunate in having had as State Superin- tendents^ a succession of men of unusual attainments. ^The present appointed members of the Board of Education are Professor T. J. Woofter, Dean of the School of Education In the University of Georgia; Professor G. R. Glenn, former State Superintendent of Education, and now President of the North Georgia Agricultural College; W. T. Steed, Butler; and Professor A. H. Moon, Baxley, Ga. 2 Among the educators who have filled this Important position are J. R. Lewis (1870-1872); G. J. Orr (1872-1888); J. S. Hook (1888-1891) ; S. D. Bradwell (1891-1895) ; G. R. Glenn (1895-1903) ; W. B. Merritt f TQ03-1907) ; J- M. Pound (1907- 1910) ; and M. L. Brlttaln (1910-....). In 191 1, the title of the office was changed f^om State School Commissioner to State Superintendent of Schools. 3J:8 History of Georgia The great progress of recent years is due more large- ly to their efforts than to any other cause. Amendments of igio and 1912 Constitutional amendments submitted to the people and adopted in 1910 and 191 2 remedied defects in our fundamental law on the subject of education. The 19 10 amendment repealed the constitutional provision that prevented counties from levying local taxation for any but elementary schools, so that it is now legal for counties and school districts to impose local taxation for high school purposes. The 191 2 amendment made the high school a part of the pub- lic school system of the state. This change, however, was rendered less effective by the action of the legis- lature in refusing to submit to the people a proposed amendment to authorize the use of state taxes for the support of high schools. Failure of the Compulsory Education Bill In spite of the great progress of the state in educa- tion, Georgia still lags behind many of her sister states in this respect. The census of 1900 showed that only eight states have higher percentages of white illiteracy than Georgia has. Those states hav- ing a higher percentage of illiteracy than Georgia are all Southern states (except New Mexico). For a number of years the feeling has been growing that the only way to reach the twenty-three per cent of History of Gcor^id 349 our school population still out of school is by com- pulsory education. A bill to this end was intro- duced in the Legislature of 1913, but failed of pas- sage. Its introduction, however, indicates the trend of thought on that subject, and it cannot be long before compulsory education will be the law in Georgia. THE UNIVERSITY SYSTEM Expansion Since the War At the outbreak of the Civil War the University of Georgia was a small classical college with a faculty of nine members and a total enrollment of one hundred and nineteen students. The exercises were suspended during the War. In 1866, no money being available for the institution, and the trustees being unable on that account to assume responsibility for the payment of salaries, several of the professors reopened the institution as a private venture. Tuition was fixed at one hundred dollars. Seventy-eight stu- dents were enrolled in 1865- 1866. The state govern- ment came to the rescue in the summer of t866 and the board again took over the payment of salaries. By Act of Congress in 1862, each state in the Union was granted a large donation of public lands for the establishment of a college to be devoted to science, especially in its application to agriculture. The funds arising from the sale of Georgia's share of the land were turned over to the trustees of the Univer- 350 History of Georgia sity in 1872, and the Georgia State College of Agri- culture and the Mechanic Arts was established at Athens as a part of the University. From that time the usefulness of the University has been increased University of Georgia, Chapel. Photograph furnished by Dr. J. P. Campbell. by the addition of other schools. Already in 1867 the Lumpkin Law School in Athens had become the law department of the University; in 1903 a School of Pharmacy was added; in 1906 a School of History of Georgia 351 Forestry was created; and during the same year a State College of Agriculture^ was established in addi- tion to the College of Agriculture and the Mechanic Arts, w^hich had become practically the scientific Academic Hall, University of Georgia. department of the University. The most recent addi- tions to the University are the School of Education, in 1908, and the School of Commerce, in 1912. ^Correlated with the State College of Agriculture are the Agricultural High Schools, of which there is one in each Con- gressional District. These schools were established during the administration of Governor Joseph M. Terrell. 352 History of Georgia From the small establishment in 1866 the parent institution has grown until in 1913 the faculty num- bers 61 members, including seven tutors; and the enrollment for 1912-1913, including the Summer School of 1912, was 1,210. Branch Colleges The Constitution of 1877 provided that thereafter no appropriations for education other than for ele- mentary schools should be made except to the Uni- versity of Georgia. The idea was to build up a great university system of state supported higher institu- tions. The subsequently established School of Technology, at Atlanta; the Girls' Normal and In- dustrial school, at Milledgeville; the State Normal for Colored Youths, at Savannah, and the Normal School, at Athens; the Georgia Industrial College for Colored Youth, at Savannah, and the Normal School, at Valdosta, are thus in law members of the university system. The North Georgia Agricultural College, at Dahlonega, and the Medical College, at Augusta, have also been adopted into the university family. These institutions are self-governing, each institution having its own president and board of trustees. A closer coordination of the several insti- tutions was brought about by an act of 1909, putting three members of the board of trustees of the parent Universitv at Athens on each of the local boards of the branch institutions, and making the presidents History of Gcor()'.) turer on English literature. He was the author of several volumes of prose, was considered one of the best flute players in America while playing in the Peabody Symphony Orchestra at Baltimore, and lec- tured for a time on English literature at the Johns Hopkins University. Lanier's message was to all mankind. He rose above merely local interests, and appealed to the mind and heart of the race. The most noted of his poems are "The Marshes of Glynn" and the "Song of the Chattahoochee," which immortalize two wide- ly different physical characteristics of Georgia; the "Symphony," "Corn," and "Sunrise." George Foster Pierce (1811-1884) Renowned as Georgia's most famous preacher and one of her leading educators. Pierce was graduated at eighteen from the University of Georgia. He became a Methodist circuit rider, the only college trained man in the conference at the time he joined. While still a very young man, Mr. Pierce was regarded as one of the leading men in his profession. His ad- vancement was rapid, the Bishopric being attained at the age of forty-three. Wesleyan Female College at Macon has the dis- tinction of being the oldest chartered female college with the power to confer degrees. When it was opened in 1839, Mr. Pierce, then only twenty-eight years old, became its first president. The institution 370 History of Georgia became involved in financial difficulties, and Pierce resigned to canvass for funds for it. He succeeded in having the institution bought by the Metho- dist Conference, and it has since been under the control of that church, though originally intended as an unsectarian college. Nine years later (1848), Mr. Pierce became president of Emory College, re- taining this post until his election as Bishop in 1854. After the Civil War, Emory was in a thoroughly disorganized condition. Bishop Pierce again took the helm and revived the institution. The esteem in which Bishop Pierce was univer- sally held is indicated by the words of General Robert Toombs: ''Bishop Pierce was the greatest man I ever knew. He was the most beautiful in person, the purest in morals, and the greatest in in- tellect." Henry Woodfin Grady (1851-1889) What other Georgian now occupies so firm a place in the affections of our people as Henry Grady! Born during the excitement of the Compromise of 1850, his early youth was spent in the midst of prepara- tions for war, listening to tales of battle, and later to harassing accounts of Reconstruction. That his mission in life should have been to restore cordial relations between the North and South is amazing in view of the bias his youthful mind must have received. History of Georgia 371 Born in Athens, Henry Grady matriculated at the University of Georgia and was a member of the class of 1868; and later he took a course in the Uni- versity of Virginia. At both institutions he made a reputation as an orator. Choosing journalism as a profession, Mr. Grady went to New York to seek a position. We let him tell his own experience when he applied to the New York Herald: "The Herald manager asked me if I knew anything about politics. I replied that I knew very little about anything else. 'Well then,' he said, 'sit at this desk and write me an article on State Conventions in the South.' With these words he tossed me a pad and left me alone in the room. When my taskmaster returned I had finished the article and was leaning back in m\ chair with my feet on the desk. 'Why, Mr. Grady, what is the matter?' asked the managing editor. 'Nothing,' I replied, 'except that I am through; 'Very well,' he said, 'leave your copy on the desk, and if it amounts to anything I will let you hear from me. Where are you stopping?' I replied, 'At the Astor House.' "Early next morning, before getting out of bed I rang for a bell boy and ordered the Herald. I actually had not strength enough to get up and dress myself until I could see whether or not my artick had been used. I opened the Herald with trem- bling hand, and when I saw that 'State Conventions in the South' was on the editorial page I fell back 372 History of Georgia on the bed, buried my face in the pillow and cried like a child. When I went back to the Herald office that day the managing editor received me cordially and said: 'You can go back to Georgia, Mr. Grady, and consider yourself in the employ of the Herald f " Mr. Grady returned to Georgia and was at once offered a place on The Atlanta Constitution, a posi- tion which did not interfere with his duties as corre- spondent for the Herald. He made the Constitu- tion the greatest of Southern newspapers. His repu- tation as a journalist and orator grew with every year, and in 1886 he was honored by an invitation to address the New England Society. His subject was ''The New South." It may well be doubted whether any speech delivered in the United States since the Civil War has commanded such attention from the nation. It was a powerful plea for a reunited coun- try, and had a wonderful effect in softening the hearts of men in the two sections. After this speech, Grady was constantly in demand as an orator, and delivered many notable addresses, one of the most famous of which was delivered in Boston a few months before his death, in his thirty-eighth year. On his tomb- stone are these words : "When he died he was literally loving a nation into peace." Joel Chandler Harris (1848-1908) Among our prose writers several men would re- History of Georgia 373 ceive attention in a more extended work than this. Judge A. B. Longstreet, author of ^'Georgia Scenes"; Charles H. Smith, better known as "Bill Arp"; Richard Malcolm Johnston, who, in interest- ing novels, has sketched Middle Georgia life of half a century ago; Charles Colcock Jones, whose history of Georgia has been pronounced the best of the state histories; Will N. Harben, whose stories of the Georgia mountaineers have won for him a nation- wide audience: the works of these and many others should be familiar to every Georgia boy and girl. We are all, happily, familiar with the wonderful stories of Joel Chandler Harris. Only he and Sid- ney Lanier have won the recognition of the world at large. Born and reared in the Black Belt of Georgia, Mr. Harris had a keen appreciation of the oddities of no- gro character and no one has ever equalled him in reproducing the negro dialect. His Uncle Remus and other books are read in every land where English is spoken. ''The Wren's Nest," Mr. Harris's home in Atlanta, has been bought by popular subscriptions and is to be preserved as a memorial to the great humorist. In addition to his dialect stories, Mr. Harris was the author of several works in more seri- ous vein, among others a charming little volume called "Stories of Georgia," to which references are made in the Additional Readings of this book; and a biography of Henry Grady. 374 History of Georgia Logan Edwin Bleckley (1827-1907) In Georgia the law has always been most alluring to men of conspicuous ability. Sketches of many of the eminent lawyers of the state have been given in their appropriate places. Many others might be mentioned, such as Eugenius A. Nisbet, chairman of the Committee that drew up the Ordinance of Seces- sion in 1861; Francis S. Bartow, killed in the first battle of Manassas; Joseph H. Lumpkin, first Chief Justice of the Supreme Court of Georgia; Joseph R. Lamar, appointed by President Taft as Associate Justice of the Supreme Court of the United States; Charles F. Crisp, Speaker of the National House of Representatives, in the 53rd Congress; Walter B. Hill, who gave up his practice to become Chan- cellor of the University and restore the institution to its rightful position in the state; Augustus O. Bacon, United States Senator since 1894. Members of the bar themselves, however, would probably agree that former Chief Justice Logan E. Bleckley was the most accomplished jurist the state has produced. Judge Bleckley was born in Rabun County, Geor- gia. Frail and sickly, young Bleckley cared little for the ordinary pleasures of boys of his age, but devoted himself to hard study. He had no money to pay for a school or college education, or even to buy books. Nevertheless he prepared himself to stand the bar examinations and was admitted to prac- tice in 1846. There was but little to do in his remote History of Georgia 375 mountain county, and he was forced to suspend his practice and take employment as a bookkeeper for the State Railroad. He later became one of the gov- ernor's secretaries; and in 1864 was made a Supreme Court reporter. In 1875 he was appointed to the Supreme Court, but the work proved too severe and he retired five years later. He was subsequently made Chief Justice and held the office until his final retirement in 1894. It was as a Supreme Court Jus- tice that Bleckley made his name famous. He not only had one of the keenest legal minds in America, but through long and painful toil acquired a master- ly literary style. Judge Bleckley made an extraor- dinary impression on the lawyers who practiced in his court. A poet of no mean ability; bubbling over with wit and humor; profoundly versed in legal prin- ciples, he ranks as one of the great jurists of our time. Some of his decisions have been given a place in the compilation known as '^Great Decisions by Great Judges." Mr. Justice Lamar in a sketch of Judge Bleckley says that his opinions '^are the most quotable extant, and sparkle, not with an occasional, but with a mul- titude of sayings — pithy, humorous, wise; couched in language so perfect that they charm both the layman and the lawyer. * * * But Judge Bleckley's repu- tation does not rest upon his brilliant sentences. They are but the flashes of his genius. His sure and na- tional reputation as a great judge rests upon the sol- 376 History of Georgia idity of his learning, his profound knowledge of the law, and the value of his opinions contained in the Georgia Reports." «^ Additional Reading. Crawford W. Long: Harris, Joel Chandler, Stories of Georgia, 170-173; The Literature of Georgia: Smith, C. H., History of Georgia, chapter XXXVIII; Sketches of Long, Lanier, Pierce, Grady and Bleckley: Northen, W. J., Men of Mark in Georgia, II, III, IV. APPENDIX I CIVIL GOVERNMENT OF GEORGIA^ Constitution of 1877- The Constitution under which we now live was adopted in 1877. As soon as the carpet-bag govern- ment was overthrown, a demand arose that a new Constitution be made by the white people of the state. Many iniquities had been practised under the Constitution of 1868, prepared by adventurers and negroes. The state had become liable for millions under the constitutional provision permitting state ^ McPherson, J. H. T., History and Civil Government of Geor- gia. Contains a full description of the civil government of the state. ^ The War Constitutions. On seceding from the Union in 1 86 1, the people of Georgia adopted a new Constitution, in order that the fundamental law of the state might conform to her position as an independent state in the Southern Confederacy. There were no changes of special interest. The second war Con- stitution was adopted in 1865, during the Presidential Recon- struction. The most notable changes were the abolition of slavery, and the provisions for securing civil rights to the freedmen. The third of the revolutionary constitutions was prepared by the con- vention summoned by General Meade, military governor, in 1868. The right of suffrage was conferred on the blacks ; free schools were established and a provision made for their maintenance; the term of office of the governor was extended from two to four years; the endorsement of railroad bonds by the state was made legal; as well as the unlimited issue of bonds for educational purposes. 377 378 History of Georgia endorsement of railroad bonds. The following para- graphs are an analysis of the government of Georgia as found in the last Constitution and the amendments adopted from time to time. Bill of Rights The first Article of the Constitution is called the Bill of Rights. In it the people are guaranteed those fundamental rights which our English ancestors and colonial fathers fought to secure. Such privileges are the right to trial by jury; the right of a person charged with crime to have a copy of the accusation and a list of the witnesses on whose testimony the charge is brought; the right to the writ of habeas corpus; the right of religious freedom, of freedom of the press and free speech. The Bill of Rights protects the citizen from arbitrary arrest and his per- son and property from arbitrary search. So accus- tomed are we to the enjoyment of these rights, they seem so ordinary and commonplace, that it is almost impossible for us to understand that many centuries of agitation and bloodshed were the price paid by our ancestors for these inestimable privileges. The possession of them makes us a civilized nation, for such rights do not exist in barbarous, semi-civilized, or despotically governed countries. The Elective Franchise Just as precious a right as any we enjoy is that of self-government. The Constitution creates a ma- History of Georgia 379 chinery of government, described below, and pro- vides for certain officers to conduct this government. The people control the officers through the exercise of the ballot or franchise. Should the elected officers undertake to infringe on any rights of the people, they may be turned out of office. Before the Civil War the individual states made any laws they desired in the matter of voting. Exer- cising such control, Georgia had extended the right of suffrage only to white men over twenty-one years of age. But the Fifteenth Amendment to the Fed- eral Constitution requires that no distinction in this matter be made on account of race, color or previous condition of servitude. Hence the negroes of Geor- gia became electors. In 1908, Georgia adopted an amendment to the constitution with the purpose of disfranchising the negroes, the vast majority of whom regarded the franchise as a financial asset. It is evident from the terms of the law that all negroes are not disfranchised. The possession of a small sum of money or of the rudiments of an education restores the ballot to many worthy negroes. Ignorant and thriftless whites are allowed to vote under clause (c) of the amendment. If this provision were struck out and the whole law applied justly to whites and blacks, it would have a salutary effect in creating in the minds of the people respect for the ballot. As the law now stands, a stimulus is given the negroes to acquire property and education; but no such in- 380 History of Georgia centive is held out to the whites, of whom a large element do not understand the proper use of the bal- lot. The following is now the suffrage law: 1. Males who are citizens of the state and of the United States, not less than twenty-one years of age, and not disqualified by any provision of the law, are electors. 2. Before being entitled to register and vote, one must have resided in the state a year next preceding the election and in the county in which he offers to vote at least six months; must have paid all taxes required since the adoption of the constitution of 1877; and such payment of taxes must be made at least six months prior to the election at which he proposes to vote, except when such election is held within six months from the expiration of the time fixed by law for the payment of taxes. 3. In addition to the two clauses above, the pros- pective voter must fall within at least one of the fol- lowing five classes (Amendment of 1908) : a. He must have served honorably in some war in which the United States has engaged or in the War Between the States; or b. Be lawfully descended from some veteran; or c. Be of good character, and understand the du- ties and obligations of citizenship under a republican form of government; or d. Be able to read correctly in English any para- graph of the Constitution of the United States or of History of Geoj-gia 381 this State, and write the same correctly in English; or e. Own at least forty acres of land situated in this state, upon which he resides; or be the owner of property in this state, assessed for taxation at not less than five hundred dollars. The suffrage is withheld from persons convicted of crimes involving moral turpitude, unless they have been pardoned; and from idiots and insane persons. Clauses (a) and (b) of paragraph 3 are only tem- porary. The right to register under them ceases on January i, 1915, so that the ^^grandfather" feature of the suffrage law will in time be inoperative. The Three Branches of Government The government created by the Constitution con- sists of an Executive, a Legislative, and a Judicial Department. The Executive is the Governor, Sec- retary of State, Comptroller-General, Treasurer, and a number of administrative Boards, such as the Prison Commission and the Railroad Commission. The Legislative consists of a Senate and a House of Representatives; while under the Judiciary come the Supreme Court, the Court of Appeals, the Su- perior Courts, and certain inferior courts. EXECUTIVE DEPARTMENT The Governor The Governor is elected by popular vote for a term of two years. He may run for re-election, but 382 History of Georgia after a second term is not again eligible until after the expiration of four years. Residence in the United States for fifteen years and in Georgia six years are required of the Governor; and he must be not less than thirty years of age. The salary is $5,000.00 per annum. The duties of the Governor are many and important. He is commander-in-chief of the military forces of the state; has power to grant reprieves and pardons, except in cases of treason and impeach- ment; is empowered to fill by appointment many im- portant offices, and to fill unexpired terms in some elective offices, such as the United States Senatorship. The Governor possesses a restricted right of veto over all legislation. A two-thirds vote of both houses of the Legislature sets aside his veto. The Secretary of State The Secretary of State performs many important duties, among which may be mentioned the duty of preserving the original acts and journals of the Legis- lature, as well as other public documents; he is also keeper of the Great Seal of the State. The Treasurer The Treasurer receives all money due the state. He disburses funds on the order of the Governor, countersigned by the Comptroller-General. Since 1907 the Treasurer has had added to his duties that of examining the banks of the state. History of Georgia 383 The Comptroller The Comptroller-General is the Auditor of the state. All accounts against the state must be approved by him before payment and he countersigns all vouch- ers on the Treasury. He also has oversight over the collection of taxes, one of the most important func- tions of government. He is required to submit an- nually to the Legislature a schedule of all appropria- tions made during the current year, and a set of tables showing the taxable property of the state, both real and personal. Property of whites and negroes is separately listed. In addition to these manifold duties, the Comp- troller-General, as State Insurance Commissioner, has general oversight over all insurance companies doing business in Georgia. Other Executive Officers and Boards In addition to the above officers, there is a State Superintendent of Schools, an Attorney-General, a Railroad Commission, a Commissioner of Pensions, a Prison Commission, a State Board of Health, a Com- missioner of Agriculture, a Labor Commissioner and other Boards. The functions of these offices are fairly obvious from the names. LEGISLATIVE DEPARTMENT The Senate Georgia is divided into forty-four districts of three or four counties each. Each district elects a Senator 384 History of Georgia for a term of two years. Senators must not be less than twenty-five years of age, must have resided in the state four years and in the district one year. A president of the Senate is elected by viva voce vote from among the Senators. In case of the death or resignation of the Governor, the president of the Sen- ate (or in case of his death, resignation or disability, the Speaker of the House of Representatives) be- comes the acting governor, but it is his duty imme- diately to order an election for the unexpired term, to be held not less than thirty nor more than sixty days after he enters upon the discharge of the duties of the office. The Senate has the sole right to try impeachments. The House of Representatives The House of Representatives consists of one hundred and eighty-four members, distributed as fol- lows : The six counties having the largest population are entitled to three members each; the next twenty- six counties in rank have two members each, and the remaining one hundred and sixteen counties one each. The Census of 1910 shows that Fulton, Chatham, Richmond, Bibb, Muscogee and Floyd are the six largest counties. This system of representation is open to criticism on the ground that the large counties are not ade- quately represented. For instance, Fulton County has a population of 177,733. The combined popula- History of Georgia 385 tion of Rabun, Towns, Union, Fannin, Lumpkin, Habersham, White, Gilmer, and Dawson counties is considerably less than half of Fulton's population. Yet these nine small counties have three times the weight in our Legislature as has Fulton County, not- withstanding Fulton's predominance in wealth and intelligence. This is a defect that ought to be reme- died. The easiest way to do this would be to give the cities representation as well as the counties. The first constitution of Georgia, 1777, allowed Savannah four representatives in addition to those of Chatham County; there is no valid reason against this plan. The Legislature meets in Atlanta on the fourth Wednesday in June each year and sits for fifty days, including Sundays, but a practice has grown up of taking a recess and declaring by resolution the days during which the General Assembly is not in session, "dies non," by which means the session is frequently prolonged beyond the constitutional period of fifty days. This practice is of somewhat doubtful legality, and it is even more questionable whether a Sunday can be declared to be "dies non." The range of topics on which the Legislature may enact laws is extremely wide, but many restrictions are imposed by the Con- stitution. Privileges of the Legislature Each House is judge of the election returns of its members, and has power to censure, fine, imprison 386 History of Georgia or expel members at its pleasure. Either House may imprison any person who may be guilty of contempt of the House. Members are free from arrest during attendance on the general assembly, except for trea- son, felony or breach of the peace. Process of Law-making Legislation may originate in either House, except in the case of money bills, which always originate in the House of Representatives. Proposed legisla- tion comes before either house in the shape of a ''bill," which must be read on three different days. On the first reading, the bill is usually referred to one of the standing committees. When the commit- tee reports the bill, it is read the second time. If the committee's report is adverse, the bill is usually de- bated and disposed of at once; if the committee's action is favorable, the bill is held off for a third reading, when it is debated, and a vote taken. If the measure is passed, it is sent to the other House, where the same process is repeated. After both Houses have passed the measure, an "enrolled copy" is made and signed by the presiding officers of both Houses. It is then entered on the journals and sent to the Governor. Three courses of action are open to the Governor: He may sign the bill, in which case it becomes law; he may veto and return it to the Leg- islature, with his reasons for disapproval; or he may take no action whatever. Should he neither sign nor History of Georgia 387 veto, the bill will automatically become law at the expiration of five days, unless the Legislature has adjourned in the interim. Should such adjourn- ment occur, the bill is defeated — a process known as a ''pocket veto." THE JUDICIARY The Supreme Court The Supreme Court was first established in 1845. It consisted of three justices, but an amendment of 1896 increased the number to six. This amendment also took from the Governor the appointive power and subjected the office to popular election. The term of the office is six years. The function of the Supreme Court is to correct errors of law and in equity in all of the lower courts over which the Court of Appeals has not exclusive appellate jurisdiction. The Court of Appeals The Court of Appeals was created by an amend- ment of 1906. It consists of three judges. This court was established to relieve the pressure of work on the Supreme Court, and is of equal authority with it, except that the Supreme Court has exclusive juris- diction over cases involving interpretation of the Con- stitution. Appeals from city courts lie direct to the Court of Appeals. Ought Judges to be Elected Grave difference of opinion is to be found among students of government as to whether judges should 388 History of Georgia be elected by popular vote or be appointed by the executive. There are obvious objections to either method, but the weight of opinion seems to be that judges should be removed as far as possible from the temptation to mould their decisions in accordance with their political welfare. In this connection the history of Courts in Georgia is highly interesting. The Constitution of 1861 placed the appointment of Supreme Court and Superior Court Judges in the hands of the Governor, with the advice and consent of the Senate. The next Constitution, 1865, restored the election of the Supreme Court justices to the Legislature and of Superior Court judges to the people of the circuit — the system in operation prior to 1 86 1. In 1868 the Governor was again given the appointive power for both Supreme and Superior Court judges; in 1877 ^^^ Constitution placed the election of both classes of judges in the hands of the Legislature; and in 1896, both Supreme and Superior Court judgeships became subject to popular election. Superior Courts For judicial purposes, Georgia is divided into twenty-five circuits, consisting of from one to ten counties each. There is one judge to each circuit, except the Atlanta Circuit, which has three judges. Superior Courts in most of the counties convene twice each year in regular session, though in a few counties there are from four to six regular sessions. History of Georgia 389 The Judges and Solicitors-General are elected by the people for four year terms. These courts have a wide jurisdiction, including divorce cases, criminal actions where the penalty is death or imprisonment in the penitentiary; litigation involving land titles, and equity cases. They also entertain appeals from lower courts, except the city courts. LOCAL ADMINISTRATION The County While our laws are made by a central legislative body, the administration of these laws is largely in the hands of county officials. In no way has the Anglo-Saxon genius for politics more admirably manifested itself than in the development of local government. Each one of the one hundred and forty-eight counties in Georgia has a regular form of government, with officers in the main elected by the people of the county. The powers of these offi- cers are principally administrative and judicial. The Ordinary The most important of the county officers is the Ordinary. He is both a judicial and administrative officer. He has exclusive jurisdiction over all mat- ters concerning the probate of wills; issues letters testamentary, letters of administration, guardianship and executorship, and preserves the annual returns of such trusteeships; grants marriage licenses; and 390 History of Georgia records homesteads and exemptions. The Ordinary's administrative duties amount to a general supervi- sion and control of all the property of the county, such as buildings, roads and bridges. He examines and audits the accounts of other county officers. In many counties the administrative duties of the Ordinary have been placed in the hands of a Board of Commissioners of Roads and Revenues, thus re- lieving the Ordinary of some of his many duties, and making for greater efficiency. County Court This court has jurisdiction in all civil cases where the amount involved does not exceed five hundred dollars; and in criminal cases in which the punish- ment is not death or confinement in the penitentiary. Sessions are held monthly. The Judge and Solicitor are appointed by the Governor for four years. Ap- peals lie to the Superior Court. Some counties have "City Courts" instead of County Courts. The City Court has jurisdiction over all cases in which exclusive jurisdiction is not vested in other courts, and appeals are made direct to the Court of Appeals. Clerk of the Superior Court The records of the Superior Court are kept by a Clerk. He is charged also with the important duty of keeping records of all transfers of real and per- sonal property. History of Georgia 391 Tax Receiver This officer is charged with the duty of receiving from all property owners annual statements of the amount and kinds of their property. When the re- turns are in, three digests are made. One of these is sent to the Comptroller-General of the state, who on the basis of this information levies the state tax, another goes to the Ordinary, who fixes the rate of the county tax; while the third is put in the hands of the tax collector. In addition to these financial duties, the tax receiver collects statistics relating to acreage planted, acreage of wild lands, and products of manufactories. He also registers the number of children of school age. Juries Jurors are chosen by Jury Commissioners, selected by the Judge of the Superior Court for six year terms. They revise the jury list every second year. From the books of the tax receiver, the Commis- sioners select a large number of men for service as jurors. Lists for Grand Jurors and Petit Jurors are made separately. From the lists thus prepared the Judge of the Superior Court draws the Grand and Petit Jurors for each term of court. The Petit Jurors perform general jury duty in the trial of civil and criminal cases in the Superior Court. The Grand Jury, consisting of not less than eighteen nor more than twenty-three men, meets every year for 392 History of Georgia the purpose of auditing the books of county officials and inspecting the general affairs of the county. The Grand Jury advises the Ordinary in fixing the amount of the county tax. It is also charged with the duty of presenting for trial all persons whom they believe to be guilty of violation of law. Other County Officers Among other county officers are the Sheriff, Cor- oner, Tax Collector, County Surveyor, County Board of Education, and County School Superintendent. THE MILITIA DISTRICT For election and judicial purposes the County is subdivided into Militia Districts. As the name im- plies, this division was formerly a military one as well, each district being so laid out as to include one company of soldiers. In each District there is a Jus- tice of the Peace and a Notary Public, who is also an ex-officio Justice of the Peace. The former is elected by the people of the District, the latter is appointed by the Superior Court Judge. The Jus- tice's Court sits once a month. Its jurisdiction ex- tends in civil matters to amounts not exceeding one hundred dollars. It has no jurisdiction in criminal cases. The Justice is, however, a conservator of the peace, issuing warrants for the arrest of persons charged with violation of law. He holds what is known as a "commitment" trial. After hearing the History of Georgia 393 testimony in the case he may release, bail, or commit the prisoner to jail to await trial by the Superior or County Court. MUNICIPALITIES Special problems of government arise where many people live together in towns and cities. Among these problems are ^'the preservation of order, the maintenance of health, the opening and repair of streets and sidewalks, the supply of water, and pro- tection from fire." Indeed, municipal government is considered by some publicists to present more diffi- culties than either state or national government. In Georgia any place having as many as twenty- five electors may apply for incorporation as a town. Application is usually made to the Legislature, though the Superior Courts may incorporate towns. The application contains the form of government desired by the people of the proposed town. Ordi- narily a very simple government is first established, consisting of a mayor, who is the executive and judi- cial officer, and a council, which is the legislative body. Other officers may be appointed by the coun- cil. As the town grows in size and a more complex government is needed, amendments of the old char- ter are made by the Legislature, or a new char- ter is granted. In larger cities the mayor is purely an executive officer, the judicial part of his work being placed in the hands of a recorder. The coun- 394 History of Georgia cil or board of aldermen in cities is a large and un- wieldy body, each ward in the city being repre- sented; and many other officers become necessary, such as sanitary inspector, street commissioner, and superintendent of education. To assist the mayor in the administrative duties many boards have been created, such as the board of health, the board of edu- cation, police commission, park commission, and others. The officers have become so numerous with the growth of municipal activity, government has be- come so complex, the separation of legislative and administrative functions so pronounced, that some cities of the country have attempted to simplify gov- ernment by abolishing the offices of mayor, coun- cillor, and the several boards, and placing control in the hands of a small commission of about five mem- bers, who combine the legislative and executive func- tions, and providing machinery by which the electors can call the Commission to account, if they fail to perform their duties acceptably. This Commission form of government has not yet been introduced in any Georgia cities. CONGRESSIONAL REPRESENTATION Georgia has two United States Senators, chosen for six year terms. Throughout the history of the na- tion, the Senators have been elected by the State Legislatures, but in 191 3 an amendment to the Fed- History of Georgia 395 eral Constitution was adopted which transferred the election of Senators to the people. In the House of Representatives each state has a number of representatives determined by its popula- tion. An Act of Congress passed in 191 1 fixed the basis of representation at one member to every 211,- 877 inhabitants. Georgia became entitled, therefore, under the Census of 19 10, to twelve representatives, and the Congressional districts have recently been rearranged so as to provide for an additional Con- gressman, Georgia having previously had only eleven representatives. FINANCES The Constitution limits the power of the General Assembly over taxation to appropriations for the sup- port of the state government, public institutions, education, interest on and redemption of the public debt; the suppression of insurrection, invasion, and for defense; and for pensions. An amendment of 1904 prohibited the levying of a higher rate of taxa- tion than five mills on each dollar's worth of prop- erty liable for taxation. Under the present law the principal sources of revenue, as shown by the Comp- troller-Generars Report for 191 1 are: 396 History of Georgia General Property Tax $2,988,474.13 Railroad Tax 483,287.62 Rent Western and Atlantic R. R 420,012.00 Poll Tax 296,148.48 Near Beer Licenses 248,855.00 Insurance Tax 152,040.64 Miscellaneous 969,628.49 $5>558,446.36 This total includes a temporary loan of $200,000. More than half of the revenue was raised by a gen- eral tax on all real and personal property. 1 GOVERNORS OF GEORGIA COLONIAL: James E. Oglethorpe 1732 William Stephens 1743 Henry Parker 175 1 Patrick Graham (Acting) .1753 PROVINCIAL: John Reynolds 1754 Henry Ellis 1757 James Wright 1760 PROVISIONAL: Archibald Bulloch, Presi- dent 1776 Button Gwinnett, Presi- dent 1777 STATE: John A. Treutlen 1777 John Houston 1778 John Wereat 1778 George Walton (Acting) . .1779 Richard Howley 1780 George Wells (Acting) ... .1780 Stephen Heard (Acting) . . .1781 Nathan Brownson 1781 John Martin 1782 Lyman Hall 1783 John Houston 1784 Samuel Elbert 1785 Edward Telfair 1786 George Matthews 1787 George Handly 1788 George Walton 1789 Edward Telfair 1790 George Matthews 1793 Jared Irwin 1796 James J.^ckson 1798 David Emanuel 1801 JosiAH Tatnall 1801 John Milledge 1802 Jared Irwin 1806 David B. Mitchell Peter Early David B. Mitchell William Rabun Matthew Talbot, President of Senate John Clark George M. Troup Joh n Forsyth George R. Gilmer Wilson Lumpkin William Schley George R. Gilmer Charles J. McDonald George W. Crawford George W. Towns Howell Cobb Herschel V. Johnson Joseph E. Brown James Johnson, Provisional Governor Charles J. Jenkins RuFus B. Bullock Benjamin Conley, Acting. . James M. Smith Alfred H. Colquitt Alexander H. Stephens.... James S. Boynton, President of Senate Henry D. McDaniel John B. Gordon W. J. Northen W. Y. Atkinson A. D, Candler Joseph M. Terrell Hoke Smith Jos. M. Brown Hoke Smith John M. Slaton, President of Senate Jos. M. Brown John M. Slaton 397 398 LIST OF COUNTIES Showing their Names, for whom named, the County Seat, when laid out, and Population, 1910. Nai AppHng Baker Baldwin Banks Bartow Ben Hill Berrien Bibb Bleckley Brooks Bryan Bulloch Burke Butts Calhoun Camden Campbell Carroll Catoosa Charlton Chatham Chattahoochee Chattooga. . . . Cherokee Clarke Clay Clayton Clinch Cobb Coffee Colquitt Columbia Coweta Cra-^ford Crisp Dade Dawson Decatur Dekalb Dodge Dooly •. . Dougherty. . . . Douglas Early Echols Effingham. . . . Elbert Emanuel For JVhom. Col. Dan'I Appling Col. John Baker Abraham Baldwin Dr. Richard Banks Gen. Francis S. Bartow. . . Benj. H.Hill. John M. Berrien Dr. W. W. Bibb Logan E. Bleckley Preston L. Brooks Jonathan Bryan Archibald Bulloch Edmund Burke Captain Sam. Butts John C. Calhoun Earl of Camden Duncan G. Campbell Charles Carroll Catoosa R.M.Charlton Earl of Chatham Chattahoochee River Chattooga River Cherokee Indians Gen. Elijah Clarke Henry Clay A. S. Clayton Gen. Duncan S. Clinch. . . John Cobb Gen. John Coffee Walter T. Colquitt Christopher Columbus.. . . Chief of Cowetas Wm. H. Crawford Charles F. Crisp Maj. Francis Dade Wm. C. Dawson Stephen Decatur Baron De Kalb Wm. E. Dodge Col. John Dooly Charles Dougherty Stephen A. Douglas Gov. Peter Early Robert M. Echols Lord Effingham Gov. Sam. Elbert Gov. David Emanuel . . . . County Seat. Baxley Newton Milledgeville Homer Cartersville. Fitzgerald. . . Nashville. . . Macon Cochran. . . . Quitman . . . . Clyde... ... Statesboro. . Waynesboro. Jackson .... Morgan .... St. Marys. . . Fairburn. . . . Carrollton . . Ringgold . . . Folkston. . . . Savannah. . . Cusseta Summerville Canton Athens Fort Gaines. Jonesboro. . . Homerville. . Marietta Douglas . . . . Moultrie. . . . Appling Newnan .... Knoxville. . . Cordele Trenton . . . . Dawsonville. Bainbridge. . Decatur. . . . Eastman. . . . Vienna Albany Douglasville. Blakely..... Statenville. . Springfield . . Elberton. . . . Swainsboro.. Laid out. 825 803 858 861 907 856 822 912 858 793 796 777 825 854 777 828 826 853 854 777 854 838 832 801 854 858 850 832 854 856 790 826 822 905 837 857 823 822 870 821 853 870 818 858 777 790 812 Popula- tion. 12,318 7.973 18,354 11,244 25,388 11,863 22,772 56,646 23.832 6,702 26,464 27,268 13,624 11.334 7,690 10,874 30,855 7,184 4,722 79,690 5.586 13,608 16,661 23.273 8,960 10.453 8,424 28,397 21.953 19,789 12,328 28,800 8,310 16,423 4.139 4,686 29.045 27,881 20,127 20,554 16,035 8,953 18,122 3.309 9.971 24,125 25,140 LIST OF COUNTIES— Continued 399 Name. Fannin Fayette Floyd Forsyth Franklin. . . . Fulton Gilmer Glascock. . . . Glynn Gordon Grady Greene Gwinnett. . . . Habersham. . Hall Hancock. . . . Haralson. . . . Harris Hart Heard Henry Houston Irwin Jackson Jasper JefF Davis. . . , Jefferson Jenkins Johnson Jones Laurens Lee Liberty Lincoln Lowndes Lumpkin McDuffie Mcintosh. . . , Macon Madison. ... Marion Meriwether. . Miller Milton Mitchell Monroe Montgomery. Morgan Murray Muscogee. . . For IF horn. Col. J. W. Fannin Gen. Lafayette Gen. Floyd Gov. John Forsyth Benjamin Franklin Robert Fulton Gov. Geo. R. Gilmer. . . Gen. Thos. Glascock. . . John Glynn Wm. W. Gordon Henry W. Grady Gen. Nat. Greene Gov. Button Gwinnett. . Joseph Habersham Gov. Lyman Hall John Hancock Hugh A, Haralson Charles Harris Nancy Hart Stephen Heard Patrick Henry Gov. John Houston .... Gov. Jared Irwin Gov. Jas. Jackson Sergeant Jasper Jefferson Davis Thomas Jefferson Gov. Chas. J. Jenkins. . Gov. H. V. Johnson Hon. James Jones Col. John Laurens Richard H. Lee See page 127 Gen. Benj. Lincoln Wm. J. Lowndes Gov. Wilson Lumpkin. . . Geo. McDuffie. Mcintosh Family Nath. Macon Jas. Madison Gen. Francis Marion. . . . Gen. David Meriwether. Andrew J. Miller Homer V. Milton Gov. David B. Mitchell. Jas. Monroe Gen. Rich. Montgomery. Gen. Dan'l Morgan Thos. W. Murray Muscogee Indians County Seat. Blue Ridge.. . Fayetteville. . Rome Cumming. . . . Carnesville. . . Atlanta EUijay Gibson Brunswick. . . Calhoun Cairo Greensboro. . Lawrenceville, Clarkesville. . Gainesville. . . Sparta Buchanan. . . . Hamilton. . . . Hartwell Franklin McDonough.. Perry Ocilla Jefferson Monticello. . . Hazlehurst. . . Louisville. . . . Millen Wrightsville. . Gray Dublin Leesburg. . . . Hinesville. . . . Lincolnton. . . Valdosta Dahlonega. . . Thomson. . . . Darien Olgethorpe. . . Danielsville. . Buena Vista. . Greenville. . . . Colquitt Alpharetta. . . Camilla Forsyth Mt. Vernon. . Madison Spring Place . Columbus. . . . Laid out. 854 821 832 832 786 853 832 857 777 850 90s 786 818 818 818 793 856 827 853 830 821 821 818 796 812 905 796 905 858 807 807 826 777 796 825 838 871 793 837 811 827 827 856 857 857 821 793 807 832 826 Popula- tion. 12,574 10,966 36,736 11,940 17,894 177,733 9>237 4,669 15,720 15,861 18,457 18,512 28,824 10,134 25,730 19,189 13,514 17,886 16,216 1 1 , 1 80 19,927 23,609 10,461 30,169 16,552 6,050 21,379 11,520 12,897 13,103 35,501 11,679 12,924 8,714 24,436 5,444 10,325 6,442 15,016 16,851 9,147 25,180 7,986 7,239 22,114 20,450 19,638 19,717 9,763 36,227 400 LIST OF COVNTIES— Continued Name. Newton . . . . Oconee Oglethorpe. Paulding. . . Pickens. . . . Pierce Pike Polk.. Pulaski Putnam. . . . Quitman. . . Rabun Randolph . . Richmond . . Rockdale. . . Schley Screven. . . . Spalding. , . Stephens. . . Stewart. . . . Sumter Talbot Taliaferro. . Tattnall . . . Taylor Telfair Terrell Thomas. . . . Tift Toombs , . . . Towns Troup Turner Twiggs Union Upson Walker Walton Ware Warren . . . . Washington Wayne Webster. . . . Wheeler. . . . White Whitfield.., Wilcox Wilkes Wilkinson. . Worth For Whom. Sergeant John Newton. Oconee River Gen. Jas. E. Oglethorpe John Paulding Gen. Andrew Pickens.. . Franklin Pierce ZebulonM. Pike Jas. K. Polk. Count Pulaski Israel Putnam Gen. John A. Quitman . Gov. Wm. Rabun John Randolph Duke of Richmond "Rockdale Church". . . . Gov. Wm. Schley Gen. Jas. Screven Hon. Thos, Spalding. . . Gov. Alex. H. Stephens. Gen. Dan'l Stewart. . . . Gen. Thos. Sumter Gov. Matthew Talbot. . Col. Benj. Taliaferro. . . Josiah Tattnall Zach. Taylor Gov. Edward Telfair. . . Dr. Wm. Terrell Gen. Jett Thomas Nelson Tift Gen. Robert Toombs. . . Gov. Geo. N. Towns . . . Gov. Geo. M. Troup. . . Henry G. Turner Gen. John Twiggs Union Stephen Upson Maj. Freeman Walker. . Gov. Geo. Walton Nicholas Ware Gen. Joseph Warren . . . George Washington . . . . Gen. Anthony Wayne. . Daniel Webster Gen. Jos. E. Wheeler. . . Col. John White Rev. Geo. Whitefield. . . Captain John Wilcox. . . John Wilkes Gen. Tas. Wilkinson. . . . Gen. Wm. I.Worth.... County Seat. Papula" tion. Covmgton . , Watkinsville. Lexington. . . Dallas Jasper Blackshear. . Zebulon Cedartown. . . Hawkinsville. Eatonton . . . . Georgetown. . Clayton Cuthbert . . . . Augusta Conyers Ellaville Sylvania Griffin Toccoa Lumpkin . . . . Americus . . . . Talbotton. . . . Crawfordville Reidsville. . . . Butler McRae Dawson Thomasville. . Tifton Lyons Hiawassee. . . LaGrange . . . Ashburn JefFersonville. Blairsviile. . . . Thomaston . . La Fayette. . . Monroe Waycross. . . . Warrenton. . Sandersville. . Jesup Preston Alamo Cleveland. . . . Dalton Abbeville. . . . Washington. . Irwinton Sylvester. . . . 821 875 793 832 853 857 822 851 808 807 858 819 828 777 870 857 793 851 905 830 831 827 82s 801 852 807 856 825 905 90s 856 826 90s 809 832 824 833 818 824 793 784 80s 8s6 Q12 857 8si 857 777 803 853 CONSTITUTION OF THE STATE OF GEORGIA PREAMBLE. To perpetuate the principles of free government, insure justice to all, preserve peace, promote the interest and happiness of the citizen, and transmit to posterity the enjoyment of liberty, we, the people of Georgia, relying upon the protection and guidance of Almighty God, do ordain sind establish this Constitution. ARTICLE L BILL OF RIGHTS. Section I. Rights of the Citizen. 1. Origin and Foundation of Government. — All government of right originates with the people, is founded upon their will only, and is insti- tuted solely for the good of the whole. Public officers are the trustees and servants of the people, and at all times amenable to them. 2. Protection the Duty of Government. — Protection to person and property is the paramount duty of government, and shall be impartial and complete. 3. Life, Liberty and Property.— No person shall be deprived of life, liberty, or property, except by due process of law. 4. Right to the Courts. — No person shall be deprived of the right to prosecute or defend his own cause, in any of the courts of this State, in person, by attorney, or both, 5. Benefit of Counsel, Accusation, List of Witnesses, Compulsory Process and Trial. — Every person charged with an offense against the laws of this State shall have the privilege and benefit of counsel; shall be furnished, on demand, with a copy of the accusation, and a list of the witnesses on whose testimony the charge against him is founded; shall have compulsory process to obtain the testimony of his own witnesses; shall be confronted with the witnesses testifying against him, and shall have a public and speedy trial by an impartial jury. 6. Crimination of Self not Compelled. — No person shall be com- pelled to give testimony tending in any manner to criminate himself. 7. Banishment; Whipping. — Neither banishment beyond the limits of the State, nor whipping, as a punishment for crime, shall be allowed. 8. Jeopardy of Life, etc.. More than Once, Forbidden, — No person shall be put in jeopardy of life, or liberty, more than once for the same 401 402 History of Georgia offense, save on his, or her, own motion for a new trial after conviction, or in case of mistrial. 9. Bail, Fines, Punishments, Arrests. — Excessive bail shall not be required, nor excessive fines imposed, nor cruel and unusual punishments inflicted; nor shall any person be abused in being arrested, while under arrest, or in prison. 10. Costs. — No person shall be compelled to pay costs> except after conviction on final trial. 11. Habeas Corpus. — The writ of habeas corpus shall not be sus- pended. 12. Freedom of Conscience. — All men have the natural and inalien- able right to worship God, each according to the dictates of his own conscience, and no human authority should, in any case, control or inter- fere with such right of conscience. 13. Religious Opinions, etc. — No inhabitant of this State shall be molested in person or property, or prohibited from holding any public office or trust, on account of his religious opinions; but the right of lib- erty of conscience shall not be so construed as to excuse acts of licen- tiousness, or justify practices inconsistent with the peace and safety of the State. 14. Appropriations to Sects Forbidden, — No money shall ever be taken from the public treasury, directly or indirectly, in aid of any church, sect, or denomination of religionists, or of any sectarian institution. 15. Liberty of Speech Guaranteed. — No law shall ever be passed to curtail, or restrain, the liberty of speech, or of the press; any person may speak, write, and publish his sentiments, on all subjects, being re- sponsible for the abuse of that liberty. 16. Searches and Warrants. — The right of the people to be secure in their persons, houses, papers, and effects against unreasonable searches and seizures shall not be violated; and no warrant shall issue except upon probable cause, supported by oath, or affirmation, particularly describing the place, or places, to be searched, and the persons or things to be seized. 17. Slavery. — There shall be within the State of Georgia neither slavery nor involuntary servitude, save as a punishment for crime after legal conviction thereof. 18. Status of the Citizen. — The social status of the citizen shall never be the subject of legislation. 19. Civil Authority Superior to Military. — The civil authority shall be superior to the military, and no soldier shall, in time of peace, be quartered in any house without the consent of the owner, nor in time of war, except by the civil magistrate, in such manner as may be provided by law. 20. Contempts. — The power of the courts to punish for contempts shall be limited by legislative acts. 21. Imprisonment for Debt. — There shall be no imprisonment for debt. History of Georgia 403 22. Arms. — The right of the people to keep and bear arms shall not be infringed, but the General Assembly shall have power :o prescribe the manner in which arms may be borne. 23. Legislative, Judicial, and Executive Separate. — The legislative, judicial, and executive powers shall forever remain separate and distinct, and no person discharging the duties of one shall at the same time exer- cise the functions of either of the others, except as herein provided. 24. Right to Assemble and Petition. — The people have the right to assemble peaceably for their common good, and to apply to those vested with the powers of government for redress of grievances, by petition or remonstrance. 25. Citizens, Protection of. — All citizens of the United States resi- dent in this State are hereby declared citizens of this State; and it shall be the duty of the General Assembly to enact such laws as will protect them in the full enjoyment of the rights, privileges, and immunities due to such citizenship. Section II. Certain Offenses Defined. 1. Libel; Jury in Criminal Trials. — In all prosecutions or indict- ments for libel, the truth may be given in evidence; and the jury in all criminal cases shall be the judges of the law and the facts. The power of the judges to grant new trials in case of conviction is preserved. 2. Treason. — Treason against the State of Georgia shall consist in levying war against her, adhering to her enemies, giving them aid and comfort. No person shall be convicted of treason, except on the testimony of two witnesses to the same overt act,' or confession in open court. 3. Conviction. — No conviction shall work corruption of blood, or forfeiture of estate. 4. Lotteries. — All lotteries, and the sale of lottery tickets, are hereby prohibited; and this prohibition shall be enforced by penal laws. 5. Lobbying. — Lobbying is declared to be a crime, and the General Assembly shall enforce this provision by suitable penalties. 6. Fraud; Property Concealment. — The General Assembly shall have the power to provide for the punishment of fraud; and shall pro- vide, by law, for reaching property of the debtor concealed from the creditor. Section III. Protection to Person and Property. 1. Private Ways; Just Compensation. — In cases of necessity, private ways may be granted upon just compensation being first paid by the applicant. Private property shall not be taken, or damaged, for public purposes, without just and adequate compensation being first paid. 2. Attainder; ex Post Facto and Retroactive Laws, etc. — No bill of attainder, ex post facto law, retroactive law, or law impairing the obligation of contracts, or making irrevocable grants of special privileges or immunities, shall be passed. 404 History of Georgia 3. Revocation of Grants. — No grant of special privileges or immuni- ties shall be revoked, except in such manner as to work no injustice to the corporators or creditors of the incorporation. Section IV. Special Legislation Forbidden. 1. General Laws, and How Varied. — Laws of a gcKeral nature shall have uniform operation throughout the State, and no special law shall be enacted in any case for which provision has been made by an existing general law. No general law affecting private rights shall be varied in any particular case, by special legislation, except with the free consent, in writing, of all persons to be affected thereby; and no person under legal disability to contract is capable of such consent. 2. What Acts Void. — Legislative acts in violation of this Constitution, or the Constitution of the United States, are void, and the judiciary shall so declare them. Section V. Governmental Rights of the People. 1. State Rights. — The people of this State have the inherent, sole, and exclusive right of regulating their internal government, and the police thereof, and of altering and abolishing their Constitution, whenever it may be necessary to their safety and happiness. 2. Enumeration of Rights Not Deny Others. — The enumeration of rights herein contained as a part of this Constitution shall not be con- strued to den> to the people any inherent right which they may have hitherto enjoyed. ARTICLE II. ELECTIVE FRANCHISE. Section I. Qualification of Voters. (Amendment of 1908,) 1. Elections by Ballot, and Voters Must be Registered. — After the year 1908 elections by the people shall be by ballot, and only those persons shall be allowed to vote who have been first registered \\ accordance with the requirements of law. 2. Who Shall be an Elector Entitled to Register and Vote.^ — Every male citizen of this State who is a citizen of the United States, twenty- ane years old or upwards, not laboring under any of the disabilities named in this Article, and possessing the qualifications provided by it, shall be an elector and entitled to register and vote at any election by the people: Provided, thai; no soldier, sailor, or marine in the military or naval service of the United States shall acquire the rights of an elector by reason of being stationed on duty in this State. 3. Who Entitled to Register and Vote. — To entitle a person to register and vote at any election by the people, he shall have resided in the State one year next preceding the election, and in the county in which iie offers to vcte six months next preceding the election, and shall have History of Georgia 405 paid all taxes which may have been required of him since the adoption of the Constitution of Georgia of 1877 that he may have had an opportunity of p«aying agreeably to law. Such payment must have been made at least six months prior to the election at which he offers to vote, except when such elections are held within six months from the expiration of the time fixed by law for the payment of such taxes. 4. Qualifications of Elector. — Every male citizen of this State shall be entitled to register as an elector, and to vote in all elections in said State, who is not disqualified under the provisions of Section 2 of Article 2 of this Constitution, and who possesses the qualifications described in paragraphs 2 and 3 of this Section, or who will possess them at the date of the election occurring next after his registration, and who in addition thereto comes within either of the classes provided for In the five follow- ing subdivisions of this paragraph. (i) All persons who have honorably served in the land or naval forces of the United States in the Revolutionary War, or in the War of 1812, or in the War with Mexico, or in any war with the Indians, or in the War between the States, or in the War with Spain, or who honorably served in the land or naval forces of the Confederate States or of the State of Georgia in the War between the States ; or, (2) All persons lawfully descended from those embraced in the classes enumerated in the subdivision next above; or, (3) All persons who are of good character and understand the duties and obligations of citizenship under a republican form of government; or, (4) All persons who can correctly read in the English language any paragraph of the Constitution of the United States or of this State and correctly write the same in the English language when read to them by any one of the registrars, and all persons who solely because of physical disability are unable to comply with the above requirements, but who can understand and give a reasonable interpretation of any paragraph of the Constitution of the United States or of this State that may be read to them by any one of the registrars; or, (5) Any person who is the owner in good faith in his own right of at least forty acres of land situated in this State, upon which he resides, or is the owner in good faith in his own right of property situated in this State and assessed for taxation at a value of $500.00. 5. Registrars Shall Prepare Roster. — The right to register under subdivisions i and 2 of paragraph 4 shall continue only until January ist, 1915. But the registrars shall prepare a roster of all persons who register under subdivisions i and 2 of paragraph 4, and shall return the same to the clerk's office of the superior court of their counties, and the clerks of the superior court shall send copies of the same to the Secretary of State, and it shall be the duty of these officers to record and permanently pre- serve these rosters. Any person who has been once registered under either of the subdivisions 1 or 2 of paragraph 4 shall thereafter be per- 406 History of Georgia mitted to vote: Provided, he meets tlie requirements of paragraphs 2 and 3 of this Section. 6. Appeal from Decision of Registrars. — Any person to whom the right of registration is denied by the registrars upon the ground that he lacks the qualifications set forth in the five subdivisions of para- graph 4 shall have the right to take an appeal, and any citizen may enter an appeal from the decision of the registrars allowing any person to register under said subdivisions. All appeals must be filed in writing with the registrars within ten days from the date of the decision com- plained of, and shall be returned by the registrars to the office of the clerk of the superior court to be tried as other appeals, 7. Judgment of Force Pending Appeal.— Pending an appeal and until the final decision of the case, the judgment of the registrars shall remain in full force. 8. Only Qualified Voter Can Participate in Primary. — No person shall be allowed to participate in a primary of any political party or a convention of any political party in this State who is not a qualified voter. 9. Machinery for Registration. — The machinery provided by law for the registration of force October ist, 1908, shall be used to carry out the provisions of this Section, except when inconsistent with same ; the legislature may change or amend the registration laws from time to time, but no such change or amendment shall operate to defeat any of the pro- visions of this Section. Section II. Registration. 1. Registration ; Who Disfranchised. — The General Assembly may provide, from time to time, for the registration of all electors, but the following classes of persons shall not be permitted to register, vote or hold any office, or appointment of honor or trust m this State, to-wit: (i) Those who shall have been convicted, in any court of competent jurisdiction, of treason against the State, of embezzlement of public funds, malfeasance in office, bribery, or larceny, or of any crime involving moral turpitude, punishable by the laws of this State with imprisonment in the penitentiary, unless such person shall have been pardoneci. (2) Idiots and insane persons. Section III. Voters' Privilege. I. Privilege of Electors. — Electors shall, in all cases, except for treason, felony, larceny and breach of the peace, be privileged from arrest during their attendance on elections, and in going to and returning from the same. Section IV. Disqualification to Hold Office. I. Holder of Public Funds. — No person who is the holder of any History of Georgia 407 public money, contrary to law, shall be eligible to any office in this State until the same is accounted for and paid into the treasury. 2. Duelling. — No person who, after the adoption of this Constitution, being a resident of this State, shall have been convicted of fighting a duel in this State, or convicted of sending or accepting a challenge, or convicted of aiding or abetting such duel, shall hold office in this State, unless he shall have been pardoned; and every such person shall also be subject to such punishment as may be prescribed by law. Section V. Sale of Liquors^ When Forbidden. 1. Sale of Liquors on Election Days. — The General Assembly shall, by law, forbid the sale, distribution, or furnishing of intoxicating drinks within two miles of election precincts on days of election — State, county or municipal — and prescribe punishment for any violation of the same. Section VI. Returns of Elections. I. Election Returns. — Returns of election for all civil officers elected by the people, who are to be commissioned by the Governor, and also for the members of the General Assembly, shall be made to the Secretary of State, unless otherwise provided by law. ARTICLE III. LEGISLATIVE DEPARTMENT. Section I. Legislative Power, Where Vested. I. Legislative Power. — The legislative power of the State shall be vested in a General Assembly, which shall consist of a Senate and House of Representatives. Section II. Senatorial Districts. 1. Number of Senators, etc. — The Senate shall consist of forty-four members. There shall be forty-four Senatorial districts, as now arranged by counties. Each district shall have one Senator. 2. Districts Changed, How. — The General Assembly may change these districts after each census of the United States: Provided, that neither the number of districts nor the number of senators from each district shall be increased. Section III. County Representation. I. Number of Representatives, — The House of Representatives shall consist of one hundred and eighty-four representatives, apportioned among the several counties as follows, to-wit: (The apportionment was changed by the General Assembly in 1911 to the following: To the six counties having the largest population, viz: Fulton, Chatham, Richmond, Bibb, Floyd, and Muscogee, three representatives each; to the twenty-six 408 History of Georgia counties having the next largest population, viz: Laurens, Carroll, Jack- son, Sumter, Thomas, Decatur, Gwinnett, Coweta, Cobb, Washington, DeKalb, Burke, Bulloch, Troup, Hall, Walton, Bartow, Meriwether, Emanuel, Lowndes, Elbert, Brooks, Houston, Wilkes, Clarke, and Ware, two representatives each; and to the remaining one hundred and four- teen counties, one representative each. In 1912 two new counties, Wheeler and Bleckley, were created.) 2. Changed, How. — The above apportionment shall be changed by the General Assembly at its first session after each census taken by the United States Government, so as to give the six counties having the largest population three representatives, each; and to the twenty-six counties having the next largest population two representatives, each; but in no event shall the aggregate number of representatives be in- creased. Section IV. The General Assembly. 1. Term of Members. — The members of the General Assembly shall be elected for two years, and shall serve until their successors are elected. 2. Election,. When. — The first election for members of the General Assembly, under this Constitution, shall take place on the first Wednesday in December, 1877; the second election for the same shall be held on the first Wednesday in October, 1880, and subsequent elections biennially on that day, until the day of election is changed by law. 3. Meeting of the General Assembly. — ^The first meeting of the General Assembly, after the ratification of this Constitution, shall be on the fourth Wednesday in October, 1878, and annually thereafter, on the same day, until the day shall be changed by law. No session of the General Assembly shall continue longer than fifty days: Provided, that if an impeachment trial is impending at the end of fifty days, the session may be prolonged till the completion of said trial. (Prior to amend- mends adopted in 1892 the Legislature met biennially for forty days. Legislature now meets fourth Wednesday in June.) 4. Quorum. — A majority of each house shall constitute a quorum to transact business; but a smaller number may adjourn from day to day and compel the presence of its absent members, as each house may pro- vide. 5. Oath of Members. — Each senator and representative, before taking his seat, shall take the following oath, or affirmation, to-wit: "I will support the Constitution of this State, and of the United States; and on all questions and measures which may come before me, I will so conduct myself as will, in my judgment, be most conducive to the interests and prosperity of this State." 6. Length of Sessions. — (Repealed.) 7. Eligibility; Appointments Forbidden. — No person holding a mili- tary commission, or other appointment or office, having any emolument History of Georgia 409 or compensation annexed thereto, under this State, or the United States, or either of them, except justices of the peace and officers of the militia, nor any defaulter for public money, or for any legal taxes required of him, shall have a seat in either house, nor shall any senator or repre- sentative, after his qualification as such, be elected by the General As- sembly, or appointed by the Governor, either with or without the advice and consent of the Senate, to any office or appointment having any emol- ument annexed thereto, during the time for which he shall have been elected. 8. Removal Vacates. — The seat of a member of either house shall be vacated on his removal from the district or county from which he was elected. Section V. The Senate, 1. Qualifications of Senators. — The Senators shall be citizens of the United States who have attained the age of twenty-five years, and who shall have been citizens of this State for four years, and for one year residents of the district from which elected. 2. President. — The presiding officer of the Senate shall be styled the President of the Senate, and he shall be elected viva voce from the Sen- ators. 3. Impeachments. — The Senate shall have the sole power to try im- peachments, 4. Trial of Impeachments. — When sitting for that purpose, the mem- bers shall be on oath or affirmation, and shall be presided over by the Chief Justice, or the presiding justice of the Supreme Court. Should the Chief Justice be disqualified, the Senate shall select the judge of the Supreme Court to preside. No person shall be convicted without the concurrence of two-thirds of the members present. 5. Judgments in Impeachments. — Judgments, in cases of impeach- ment, shall not extend further than removal from office and disqualifica- tion to hold and enjoy any office of honor, trust, or profit, within this State; but the party convicted shall, nevertheless, be liable and subject to indictment, trial, judgment and punishment, according to law. Section VI. The House of Representatives, 1. Qualifications of Representatives. — The representatives shall be citizens of the United States who have attained the age of twenty-one years, and who shall have been citizens of this State for two years, and for one year residents of the counties from which elected. 2. Speaker. — The presiding officer of the House of Representatives shall be styled the Speaker of the House of Representatives, and shall be elected viva voce from the body. 3. Power to Impeach. — 7'he House of Representatives shall have the 410 History of Georgia 1 sole power to impeach all persons who shall have been, or may be, in office. Section VII. Enactment of Laws. 1. Elections, Returns, etc. ; Disorderly Conduct. — Each house shall be the judge of the election, returns, and qualifications of its members and shall have power to punish them for disorderly behavior, or miscon- duct, by censure, fine, imprisonment, or expulsion, but no member shall be expelled, except by a vote of two-thirds of the house to which he belongs. 2. Contempts, How Punished. — Each house may punish by imprison- ment, not extending beyond the session, any person, not a member, who shall be guilty of a contempt by any disorderly behavior in its presence, or who shall rescue, or attempt to rescue, any person arrested by order of either house. 3. Privilege of Members. — The members of both houses shall be free from arrest during their attendance on the General Assembly, and in going thereto or returning therefrom, except for treason, felony, larceny, or breach of the peace; and no member shall be liable to answer in any other place for anything spoken in debate in either house. 4. Journals. — Each house shall keep a journal of its proceedings, and publish it immediately after its adjournment. 5. Where Kept. — The original journal shall be preserved, after pub- lication, in the office of the Secretary of State, but there shall be no other record thereof. 6. Yeas and Nays, When Taken. — The yeas and nays on any ques- tion shall, at the desire of one-fifth of the members present, be entered on the journal. 7. Bills to be Read. — Every bill, before it shall pass, shall be read three times, and on three separate days, in each house, unless in cases of actual invasion or insurrection; but the first and second reading of each local bill, and bank and railroad charters shall consist of the reading of the title only, unless said bill is ordered to be engrossed. 8. One Subject-Matter Expressed. — No law or ordinance shall pass which refers to more than one subject-mater, or contains matter different from what is expressed in the title thereof. 9. General Appropriation Bill. — The general appropriation bill shall embrace nothing except appropriations fixed by previous laws, the ordinary expenses of the executive, legislative, and judicial departments of the government, payment of the public debt and interest thereon, and the support of the public institutions and educational interests of the State. All other appropriations shall be made by separate bills, each embracing but one subject. 10. BiLS FOR Revenue. — All bills for raising revenue, or appropriating money, shall originate in the House of Representatives, but the Senate may propose or concur in amendments, as in other bills. History of Georgia 411 n. Public Money, How Drawn. — No money shall be drawn from the treasury except by appropriation made by law; and a regular statement and account of the receipt and expenditure of all public money shall be published every three months, and, also, with the laws passed by each session of the General Assembly. 12. Bills Appropriating Money. — No bill or resolution appropriating money shall become a law, unless, upon its passage, the yeas and nays, in each house, are recorded. 13. Acts Signed; Rejected Bills. — All acts shall be signed by the President of the Senate and the Speaker of the House of Representatives, and no bill, ordinance, or resolution, intended to have the effect of a law, which shall have been rejected by either house, shall be again pro- posed during the same session, under the same or any other title, without the consent of two-thirds of the house by which the same was rejected. 14. Majority of Members to Pass Bill. — No bill shall become a law unless it shall receive a majority of the votes of all the members elected to each house of the General Assembly, and it shall, in every instance, so appear on the journal. 15. Local Bills. — (Stricken out by amendment.) 16. Notice of Intention to Ask Local Legislation Necessary. — No local or special bill shall be passed, unless notice of the intention to apply therefor shall have been published in the locality where the matter, or thing to be affected, may be situated, which notice shall be given at least thirty days prior to the introduction of such bill into the General Assem- bly, and in the manner to be prescribed by law. The evidence of such notice, having been published, shall be exhibited in the General Assem- bly before such act shall be passed. 17. Statutes and Sections of Code, How Amended. — No law, or sec- lion of the Code, shall be amended or repealed by mere reference to its fitle, or to the number of the section of the Code, but the amending or repealing act shall distinctly describe the law to be amended or repealed, as well as the alteration to be made. 18. Corporate Powers, How Granted. — The General Assembly shall have no power to grant corporate powers and privileges to private com- panies ; to make or change election precincts; nor to establish bridges or ferries; nor to change names of legitimate children; but it shall pre- scribe by law the manner in which such powers shall be exercised by the courts; it may confer this authority to grant corporate powers and privi- leges to private companies to the judges of the superior courts of this State in vacation. All corporate powers and privileges to banking, in- surance, railroad, canal, navigation, express and telegraph companies shall be issued and granted by the secretary of State, in such manner as shall be prescribed by law; and if in any event the secretary of State should be disqualified to act in any case, then in that event the legisla- 412 History of Georgia ture shall provide by general laws by what person such charters shall be granted. 19. Recognizances. — The General Assembly shall have no power to relieve principals or securities upon forfeited recognizances, from the payment thereof, either before or after judgment thereon, unless the principal in the recognizance shall have been apprehended and placed in the custody of the proper officer. 20. Street Railways. — The General Assembly shall not authorize the construction of any street passenger railway within the limits of any incorporated town or city, without the consent of the corporate authori- ties. 21. Yeas and Nays to be Entered, When. — Whenever the Constitu- tion requires a vote of two-thirds of either or both houses for the passing of an act or resolution, the yeas and nays on the passage thereof shall be entered on the journal. 22. Powers of the Legislature. — The General Assembly shall have power to make all laws and ordinances consistent with this Constitution, and not repugnant to the Constitution of the United States, which they shall deem necessary arfd proper for the welfare of the State. 23. Signature of Governor. — No provision in this Constitution, for a two-thirds vote of both houses of the General Assembly, shall be construed to waive the necessity for the signature of the Governor, as in any other case, except in the case of the two-thirds vote required to over- ride the veto, and in case of prolongation of a session of the General Assembly. 24. Adjournments. — Neither house shall adjourn for more than three days, or to any other place, without the consent of the other; and in case of disagreement between the two houses on a question of adjournment, the Governor may adjourn either or both of them. Section VIII. Officers of the General Assembly. I. Secretary and Clerk. — The officers of the two houses, other than the President and Speaker, shall be a secretary of the Senate, and clerk of the House of Representatives, and such assistants as they may appoint; but the clerical expenses of the Senate shall not exceed sixty dollars per day, for each session, nor those of the House of Representatives seventy dollars per day, for each session. The secretary of the Senate and clerk of the House of Representatives shall be required to give bond and security for the faithful discharge of their respective duties. Section IX. Pay of Members. I. Compensation. — The per diem of members of the General Assem- bly shall not exceed four dollars; and mileage shall not exceed ten cents for each mile travelled, by the nearest practicable route, in going to, and returning from, the capital ; but the President of the Senate and the History of Georgia 413 Speaker of the House of Representatives shall each receive not exceeding seven dollars per day. Section X. Elections by General Assembly. I. Elections. — All elections by the General Assembly shall be viva voce, and the vote shall appear on the journal of the House of Repre- sentatives. When the Senate and House of Representatives unite for the purpose of elections, they shall meet in the Representative Hall, and the President of the Senate shall, in such cases, preside and declare the result. Section XI. Married Woman's Property. 1. Wife's Estate. — All property of the wife at the time of her mar- riage, and all property given to, inherited, or acquired by her, shall remain her separate property, and not be liable for the debts of her husband. Section XH. Insurance Companies. 1. Non-Resident Insurance Companies. — All life-insurance com- panies now doing business in this State, or which may desire to establish agencies and do business in the State of Georgia, chartered by other States of the Union, or foreign states, shall show that they have depos- ited with the comptroller-general of the State in which they are char- tered, or of this State, the insurance commissioners, or such other officer as may be authorized to receive it, not less than one hundred thousand dollars, in such securities as may be deemed by such officer equivalent to cash, subject to his order, as a guarantee fund for the security of policy holders. 2. License by Comptroller. — When such showhig is made to the comptroller-general of the State of Georgia by a proper certificate from the State official having charge of the funds so deposited, the comptroller- general of the State of Georgia is authorized to issue, to the company making such showing, a license to do business in the State, upon paying the fees required by law. 3. Resident Insurance Companies. — All life-insurance companies chartered by the State of Georgia, or which may hereafter be chartered by the State, shall, before doing business, deposit, with the comptroller- general of the State of Georgia, or with some strong corporation, which may be approved by said comptroller-general, one hundred thousand dollars, in such securities as may be deemed by him equivalent to cash, to be subject to his order, as a guarantee fund for the security of the policy holders of the company making such deposit, all interests and divi- dends arising from such securities to be paid, when due, to the company so depositing. Any such securities as may be needed or desired by the com- pany may be taken from said department at any time by replacing them 414 History of Georgia with other securities equally acceptable to the comptroller-general, whose certificate for the same shall be furnished to the company. 4. General Assembly to Enact Laws for People's Protection, etc. — The General Assembly shall, from time to time, enact laws to compel all fire-insurance companies doing business in this State, whether char- tered by this State or otherwise, to deposit reasonable securities with the treasurer of this State, to secure the people against loss by the operations of said companies. 5. Reports by Insurance Companies, — The General Assembly shall compel all insurance companies in this State or doing business therein, under proper penalties, to make semi-annual reports to the Governor, and print the same at their own expense, for the information and pro- tection of the people. ARTICLE IV. POWER OF THE GENERAL ASSEMBLY OVER TAXATION. Section I. Taxation. 1. Taxation, a Sovereign Right. — The right of taxation is a sovereign right, inalienable, indestructible, is the life of the State, and rightfully belongs to the people in all republican governments, and neither the General Assembly, nor any nor all other departments of the government established by this Constitution, shall ever have the authority to irrevo- cably give, grant, limit, or restrain this right; and all laws, grants, con- tracts, and all other acts whatsoever, by said government, or any depart- ment thereof, io effect any of these purposes, shall be and are hereby declared to be null and void for every purpose whatsoever; and said right of taxation shall always be under the complete control of, and revocable by, the State, notwithstanding any gift, grant, or contract what- soever by the General Assembly. Section II. Regulation of Corporations. 1. Railroad Tariffs. — The power and authority of regulating railroad freights and passenger tariffs, preventing unjust discriminations, and re- quiring reasonable and just rates of freight and passenger tariffs, are hereby conferred upon the General Assembly, whose duty it shall be to pass laws, from time to time, to regulate freight and passenger tariffs, to prohibit unjust discriminations on the various railroads of this State, and to prohibit said roads from charging other than just and reasonable rates, and enforce the same by adequate penalties. 2. Right of Eminent Domain; Police Power. — The exercise of the right of eminent domain shall never be abridged, nor so construed as to prevent the General Assembly from taking the property and franchises of incorporated companies, and subjecting them to public use, the same as property of individuals; and the exercise of the police power of the History of Georgia 415 State shall never be abridged, nor so construed as to permit corporations to conduct their business in such a manner as to infringe the equal rights of individuals, or the general well-being of the State. 3. Charters Revived or Amended BecoxME Subject to this Constitu- tion. — The General Assembly shall not remit the forfeiture of the char- ter of any corporation, now existing, nor alter or amend the same, nor pass any other general or special law for the benefit of said corporation except upon the condition that such corporation shall thereafter hold its charter subject to the provisions of this Constitution; and every amend- ment of any charter of any corporation in this State, or any special law for its benefit, accepted thereby, shall operate as a novation of said char- ter, and shall bring the same under the provisions of this Constitution: Provided, that this section shall not extend to any amendment for the purpose of allowing any existing road to take stock in or aid in the building of any branch road. 4. Buying Stock, etc., in Other Corporations; Competition. — The General Assembly of this State shall have no power to authorize any corporation to buy shares or stock in any other corporation in this State or elsewhere, or to make any contract, or agreement whatever, with any such corporation, which may have the effect, or be intended to have the effect, to defeat or lessen competition in their respective businesses, or to encourage monopoly; and all such contracts and agreements shall be illegal and void. 5. Rebates. — No railroad company shall give, or pay, any rebate or bonus in the nature thereof, directly or indirectly, or do any act to mis- lead or deceive the public as to the real rates charged or received for freights or passage; and any such payments shall be illegal and void, and these prohibitions shall be enforced by suitable penalties. 6. Obligation of Contracts Preserved. — No provision of this Article shall be deemed, held or taken to impair the obligation of any contract heretofore made by the State of Georgia, 7. General Assembly to Enforce. — The General Assembly shall en- force the provisions of this Article by appropriate legislation. ARTICLE V. EXECUTIVE DEPARTMENT. Section I. Governor. 1. Executive Department, — The officers of the Executive Department shall consist of a Governor, secretary of State, comptroller-general and treasurer. 2. Governor; Term of Office, Salary, etc. — The Executive power shall be vested in a Governor, who shall hold his office during the term of two years, and until his successor shall be chosen and qualified. He 416 History of Georgia shall not be eligible to re-election, after the expiration of a second term, for the period of four years. He shall have a salary of five thousand dollars per annum (until otherwise provided by a law passed by a two- thirds vote of both branches of the General Assembly), which shall not be increased or diminished during the period for which he shall have been elected; nor shall he receive, within that time, any other emolu- ment from the United States, or either of them, or from any foreign power. 3. Election for Governor. — The first election for Governor, under this Constitution, shall be held on the first Wednesday in October, 1880, and the Governor-elect shall be installed in office at the next session of the General Assembly. An election shall take place biennially there- after, on said day, until another date be fixed by the General Assembly. Said election shall be held at the places of holding general elections in the several counties of this State, in the manner prescribed for the elec- tion of members of the General Assembly, and the electors shall be the same. 4. Returns of Elections. — The returns for every election of Governor shall be sealed up by the managers, separately from other returns, and directed to the President of the Senate and Speaker of the House of Rep- resentatives, and transmitted to the secretary of State, who shall, without opening said returns, cause the same to be laid before tne Senate on the day after the two houses shall have been organized, and they shall be transmitted by the Senate to the House of Representatives. 5. How Published. — The members of each branch of the General Assembly shall convene in the Representative Hall, and the President of the Senate and Speaker of the House of Representatives shall open and publish the returns in the presence and under the direction of the Gen- eral Assembly; and the person having the majority of the whole number of votes shall be declared duly elected Governor of this State, but if no person shall have such majority, then from the two persons having the highest number of votes, who shall be in life, and shall not decline an election at the time appointed for the General Assembly to elect, the General Assembly shall, immediately, elect a Governor mva voce; and in all cases of election of a Governor by the General Assembly a major- ity of the members present shall be necessary to a choice. 6. Contested Elections. — Contested elections shall be determined by both houses of the General Assembly in such manner as shall be pre- scribed by law. 7. Qualifications of Governor. — No person shall be eligible to the office of Governor who shall not have been a citizen of the United States fifteen years, and a citizen of the State six years, and who shall not have attained the age of thirty years. 'o. Death, Resignation, or Disability of Governor. — In case of the death, resignation, or disability of the Governor, the President of the History of Georgia 41? Senate shall exercise the executive powers of the government until such disability be removed, or a successor is elected and qualified. And in case of the death, resignation, or disability of the President of the Sen- ate, the Speaker of the House of Representatives shall exercise the execu- tive powers of the government until the removal of the disability, or the election and qualification of a Governor. 9. Unexpired Terms. — The General Assembly shall have power to provide, by law, for filling unexpired terms by special elections. 10. Oath of Office. — The Governor shall, before he enters on the duties of his office, take the following oath or affirmation: "I do solemnly swear (or affirm, as the case may be) that I will faithfully execute the office of Governor of the State of Georgia, and will, to the best of my ability, preserve, protect and defend the Constitution thereof, and the Constitution of the United States of America." 11. Commander-in-chief. — The Governor shall be commander-in- chief of the army and navy of this State, and of the militia thereof. 12. Reprieves and Pardons. — He shall have power to grant reprieves and pardons, to commute penalties, remove disabilities imposed by law, and to remit any part of a sentence for offenses against the State, after conviction, except in cases of treason and impeachment, subject to such regulations as may be provided by law relative to the manner of apply- ing for pardons. Upon conviction for treason he may suspend the exe- cution of the sentence and report the case to the General Assembly at the next meeting thereof, when the Genral Assembly shall either pardon, commute the sentence, direct its execution, or grant a further reprieve. He shall, at each session of the General Assembly, communicate to that body each case of reprieve, pardon or commutation granted, stating the name of the convict, the offense for which he was convicted, the sentence and its date, the date of the reprieve, pardon or commutation, and the reasons for granting the same. He shall take care that the laws are faithfully executed, and shall be a conservator of the peace throughout the State. 13. Writs of Elections; Called Session of the Legislature. — He shall issue writs of election to fill all vacancies that may happen in the Senate or House of Representatives, and shall give the General Assem- bly, from time to time, information of the state of the Commonwealth, and recommend to their consideration such measures as he may deem necessary or expedient. He shall have power to convoke the General Assembly on extraordinary occasions, but no law shall be enacted at called sessions of the General Assembly except such as shall relate to the object stated in his proclamation convening them. 14. Filling Vacancies. — When any office .shall become vacant, by death, resignation, or otherwise, the Governor shall have power to fill such vacancy, unless otherwise provided by law; and persons so ap- pointed shall continue in office until a successor is commissioned, agree- 418 History of Georgia ably to the mode poin-ted out by this Constitution, or by law in pursuance thereof. 15. Appointments Rejected. — A person once rejected by the Senate shall not be reappointed by the Governor to the same office during the same session, or the recess thereafter. 16. Governor's Veto. — The Governor shall have the revision of all bills passed by the General Assembly, before the same shall become laws, but two-thirds of each house may pass a law notwithstanding his dissent; and if any bill should not be returned by the Governor within five days (Sunday excepted) after it has been presented to him, the same shall be a law, unless the General Assembly, by their adjournment, shall prevent its return. He may approve any appropriation, and disapprove any other appropriation, in the same bill, and the latter shall not be effectual unless passed by two-thirds of each house. 17. Governor Must Approve.— Every vote, resolution, or order, to which the concurrence of both houses may be necessary, except on a question of election, or adjournment, shall be presented to the Governor, and, before it shall take effect, be approved by him, or, being disap- proved, shall be repassed by two-thirds of each house. 18. Information from Department Officers; Treasurer and Comptroller. — He may require information, in writing, from the officers in the Executive Department on any subject relating to the duties of their respective offices. It shall be the duty of the Governor, quarterly, and oftener if he deems it expedient, to examine, under oath, the treasurer and comptroller-general of the State on all matters pertaining to their respective offices, and to inspect and review their books and accounts. The General Assembly shall have authority to provide by law for the suspension of either of said officers, from the discharge of the duties of his office, and also for the appointment of a suitable person to discharge the duties of the same. 19. Secretaries. — The Governor shall have power to appoint his own secretaries not exceeding two in number, and to provide such other clerical force as may be required in his office, but the total cost for secretaries and clerical force in his office shall not exceed six thousand dollars per annum. Section II. Other Executive Officers. I. Secretary of State, Comptroller and Treasurer, How Elected. — The secretary of State, comptroller-general and treasurer shall be elected by persons qualified to vote for members of the General Assem- bly, at the same time and in the same manner as the Governor. The provisions of the Constitution as to the transmission of the returns of election, counting the votes, declaring the result, deciding when there is no election, and when there is a contested election, applicable to the election of Governor, shall apply to the election of secretary of Stif, History of Georgia 419 comptroller-general and treasurer; they shall be commissioned by the Governor and hold their offices for the same time as the Governor. 2. Treasurer's Salary. — The salary of the treasurer shall not exceed two thousand dollars per annum. The clerical expenses of his depart- ment shall not exceed sixteen hundred dollars per annum. 3. Salary of Secretary of State. — The salary of the secretary of State shall not exceed two thousand dollars per annum, and the clerical expenses of his department shall not exceed one thousand dollars per annum. 4. Comptroller-General's Salary. — The salary of the comptroller- genera! shall not exceed two thousand dollars per annum. The clerical expenses of his department, including the insurance department and wild-land clerk, shall not exceed four thousand dollars per annum; and without said clerk, it shall not exceed three thousand dollars per annum. 5. Profit from Use of Public Money. — The treasurer shall not be allowed, directly or indirectly, to receive any fee, interest, or reward from any person, bank, or corporation for the deposit or use, in any manner, of the public funds; and the General Assembly shall enforce this provision by suitable penalties. 6. Qualifications. — No person shall be eligible to the office of secre- tary of State, comptroller-general, or treasurer, unless he shall have been a citizen of the United States for ten years, and shall have resided in this State for six years next preceding his election, and shall be twenty-five years of age when elected. All of said officers shall give bond and security, under regulations to be prescribed by law, for the faithful discharge of their duties. 7. Fees and Perquisites Denied, — The secretary of State, the comp- troller-general, and the treasurer, shall not be allowed any fee, per- quisite, or compensation, other than their salaries, as prescribed by law, except their necessary expenses when absent from the seat of govern- ment on business for the State. Section III. Seal of State. 1. Great Seal. — The Great Seal of the State shall be deposited in the office of the secretary of State, and shall not be affixed to any instrument of writing except by order of the Governor, or General Assembly, and that now in use shall be the Great Seal of the State until otherwise provided by law. ARTICLE VI. JUDICIARY. Section I. Courts. I. Courts Enumerated. — The judicial powers of this State shall be vested in a Supreme Court, a Court of Appeals, superior courts, courts 420 History of Georgia of ordinary, justices of the peace, commissioned notaries public, and such other courts as have been or may be established by law. Section II. Supreme Court and Court of Appeals. 1. Supreme Court Judges. — The Supreme Court shall consist of a Chief Justice and five Associate Justices. A majority of the court shall constitute a quorum. 2. Governor to Designate Judges to Preside, When. — When one or more of the judges are disqualified from deciding any case, by in- terest or otherwise, the Governor shall designate a judge, or judges, of the superior courts to preside in said case. 3. Bondholding Judge Disqualified, When. — No judge of any court shall preside in any case where the validity of any bond — Federal, State, corporation, or municipal — is involved, who holds in his own right, or as the representative of others, any material interest in the class of bonds upon which the question to be decided arises. 4. Terms of Office. — The Chief Justices and Associate Justices shall hold their offices for six years, and until their successors are qualified; but appointments to fill vacancies shall only be for the unexpired term, or until such vacancies are filled by elections, agreeably to the mode pointed out by the Constitution. 5. Jurisdiction, — The Supreme Court shall have no original juris- diction, but shall be a court alone for the trial and correction of errors in law and equity from the superior courts in all civil cases, whether legal or equitable, originating therein or carried thereto from the court of ordinary, and in all cases of conviction of a capital felony, and for the determination of questions certified to it by the Court of Appeals; and shall sit at the seat of government at such times in each year as are or may be prescribed by law, for the trial and determination of writs of error from the superior courts and of questions certified to it as aforesaid. (Clauses of temporary force omitted. Amendment of 1906.) 6. Cases, How Disposed of. — The Supreme Court shall dispose of every case at the first or second term after such writ of error is brought; and in case the plaintiff in error shall not be prepared at the first term to prosecute the case — unless prevented by providential cause — it shall be stricken from the docket, and the judgment below shall stand affirmed. 7. Judgments May Be Withheld. — In any case the court may, in its discretion, withhold its judgment until the next term after the same is argued. 8. The Supreme Court shall hereafter consist of a Chief Justice and five Associate Justices. The court shall have power to hear and deter- mine cases when sitting, either in> a body or in two divisions of three judges each, under such regulations as may be prescribed by the General Assembly. A majority of either division shall constitute a quorum for History of Georgia 421 that division. The Chief Justice and the Associate Justices of the Su- preme Court shall hereafter be elected by the people at the same time and in the same manner as the Governor and State House officers are elected. (Clauses of only temporary force omitted.) All terms (except unexpired terms) shall be for six years each. In case of any vacancy which causes an unexpired term, the same shall be filled by executive appointment, and the person appointed by the Governor shall hold his office until the next regular election, and until his successor for the balance of the unexpired term shall have been elected and qualified. The returns of said special election shall be made to the secretary of state. (Amendment of 1896.) 9. Court of Appeals. — The Court of Appeals shall, until otherwise provided by law, consist of three judges, of whom two shall constitute a quorum. It shall sit at the seat of government and at such other places as may be prescribed by law. (This paragraph is too long for incorporation here. The rest of it provides a time for the election of judges, their terms of office, etc. The rules applying to Supreme Court justices are made to apply in the case of Appellate Court judges. The Court of Appeals is given jurisdiction over all cases from the superior courts in which such jurisdiction is not conferred by the Constitution on the Supreme Court, and over cases from the city courts. The Supreme Court has exclusive jurisdiction over all cases involving in- terpretation of the Constitution. Amendment of 1906.) Section III. Superior Courts. 1. Terms, etc., of Superior Court Judges. — There shall be a judge of the superior courts for each judicial circuit, whose term of office shall be four years, and until his successor is qualified. He may act in other circuits when authorized by law. The legislature shall have authority to add one or more additional judges of the superior court for any judicial circuit in this State, and shall have authority to regulate the manner in which the judges of such circuits shall dispose of the business thereof, and shall fix the time at which the term or terms of office of such additional judge or judges shall begin, and the manner of his appointment or election, and shall have authority from time to time to add to the number of such judges in any judicial circuit, or to reduce the number of judges in any judicial circuit; Provided, that at all times there shall be at least one judge in every judicial circuit of this State. 2. Elections, When to Be Made. — The successors to the present and subsequent incumbents shall be elected by the electors, entitled to vote for members of the General Assembly of the whole State, at the general election held for such members, next preceding the expiration of their respective terms. (Prior to amendment of 1898 these judges were elected by the legislature.) 3. Terms Begin, When. — The terms of the judges to be elected under 422 History of Georgia n the Constitution (except to fill vacancies) shall begin on the first day of January after their election. Every vacancy occasioned by death, resig- nation or other causes shall be filled by appointments of the Governor until the first day of January after the general election held next after the expiration of thirty days from the time such vacancy occurs, at which election a successor for the unexpired term shall be elected. Section IV. Jurisdiction of Superior Courts. 1. Exclusive Jurisdiction. — The superior court shall have exclusive jurisdiction in cases of divorce; in criminal cases where the offender is subjected to loss of life, or confinement in the penitentiary; in cases respecting titles to land and equity cases. 2. Equity May Be Merged in Common Law Courts. — The General Assembly may confer upon the courts of common law all the powers heretofore exercised by courts of equity in this State. 3. General Jurisdiction. — Said courts shall have jurisdiction in all civil cases, except as hereinafter provided. 4. Appellate Jurisdiction. — They shall have appellate jurisdiction in all such cases as may be provided by law. 5. Certiorari, Mandamus, etc. — They shall have power to correct errors in inferior judicatories, by writ of certiorari, which shall only issue on the sanction of the judge; and said courts and the judges thereof shall have power to issue writs of mandamus, prohibitioK, scire facias, and all other writs that may be necessary for carrying their powers fully into effect, and shall have such other powers as are or may be conferred on them by law. 6. Appeal from One Jury to Another. — The General Assembly may provide for an appeal from one jury, in the superior and city courts, to another, and the said court may grant new trials on legal grounds. 7. Judgment By the Court. — The court shall render judgment with- out the verdict of a jury, in all civil cases founded on unconditional contracts in writing, where an issuable defense is not filed under oath or affirmation. 8. Sessions. — The superior courts shall sit in each county not less than twice in each year, at such times as have been or may be ap- pointed by law. 9. Presiding Judge Disqualified. — The General Assembly may pro- vide by law for the appointment of some proper person to preside in cases where the presiding judge is, from any cause, disqualified. Section V. Judges of Superior and City Courts. I. Judges of Superior and City Courts May Alternate, When. — In any county within which there is, or hereafter may be, a city court, the judge of said court, and of the superior court, may preside in the courts History of Georgia 423 of each other in cases where the judge of either court is disqualified to preside. Section VI. Court of Ordinary. 1. Ordinary, Appeals from. — The powers of a court of ordinary, and of probate, shall be vested in an ordinary for each county, from whose decision there may be an appeal (or, by consent of parties, without a decision) to the superior court, under regulations prescribed by law. 2. Powers. — The courts of ordinary shall have such powers in relation to roads, bridges, ferries, public buildings, paupers, county officers, county funds, county taxes, and other county matters, as may be conferred on them by law. 3. Term of Office. — The ordinary shall hold his office for the term of four years, and until his successor is elected and qualified. Section VII. Justices of the Peace. 1. Justices, Number and Term. — There shall be in each militia dis- trict one justice of the peace, whose official term, except when elected to fill an unexpired term, shall be four years. (An amendment in 1912 provides that the General Assembly may in its discretion abolish justice courts and the office of justice of the peace and of notary public ex officio justice of the peace in any city of over 20,000 population, except Savannah, and establish a special court or courts in lieu thereof.) 2. Jurisdiction. — Justices of the peace shall have jurisdiction in all civil cases, arising ex contractu, and in cases of injuries or damages to personal property, when the principal sum does not exceed one hundred dollars, and shall sit monthly at fixed times and places; but in all cases there may be an appeal to a jury in said court, or an appeal to the superior court, under such regulations as may be prescribed by law. 3. Elections and Commission. — Justices of the peace shall be elected by the legal voters in their respective districts, and shall be commis- sioned by the Governor. They shall be removable on conviction for malpractice in office. Section VIII. Notaries Public. I. Notaries Public, How Appointed, etc. — Commissioned notaries public, not to exceed one for each militia district, may be appointed by the judges of superior courts in their respective circuits, upon recom- mendation of the grand juries of the several counties. They shall be commissioned by the Governor for the term of four years, and shall be ex officio justices of the peace, and shall be removable on conviction for malpractice in office. Section IX. Uniformity of Courts. 1. Uniformity Provided for. — The jurisdiction, powers, proceedings and practice of all courts or officers invested with judicial powers (except 424 History of Georgia city courts), of the same grade or class, so far as regulated by law, and the force and effect of the process, judgment and decree, by such courts, severally shall be uniform. This uniformity must be established by the General Assembly. Section X. Attorney-General. 1. Attorney-General; Election. — There shall be an attorney-general of this State, who shall be elected by the people at the same time, for the same term, and in the same manner as the Governor. 2. Duties. — It shall be the duty of the attorney-general to act as the legal adviser of the Executive Department, to represent the State in the Supreme Court in all capital felonies; and in all civil and criminal cases in any court when required by the Governor, and to perform such other services as shall be required of him by law. Section XI. Solicitor-General. 1. Solicitor-General; Term. — There shall be a solicitor-general for each judicial circuit, whose official term (except to fill a vacancy) shall be four years. The successors of present and subsequent incumbents shall be elected by the electors of the whole State, qualified to vote for members of the General Assembly, at the general election held next preceding the expiration of their respective terms. Every vacancy occasioned by death, resignation or other cause shall be filled by appointment of the Governor until the first day of January after the general election held next after the expiration of thirty days from the time such vacancy occurs, at which election a successor for the unexpired term shall be elected. (Clause of temporary force omitted.) 2. Duties. — It shall be the duty of the solicitor-general to represent the State in all cases in the superior courts of his circuit, and in all cases taken up from his circuit to the Supreme Court, and to perform such other services as shall be required of him by law. Section XII. Elections of Judges, etc. (Repealed.) Section XIII. Judicial Salaries. 1. Salaries of Judges. — The judges of the Supreme Court shall have, out of the treasury of the State, salaries not to exceed three thousand dollars per annum, the judges of the superior courts shall have salaries not to exceed two thousand dollars per annum; the attorney-general shall have a salary not to exceed two thousand dollars per annum; and the solicitors-general each shall have salaries not to exceed two hundred and fifty dollars per annum, but the attorney-general shall not have any fee or perquisite in any cases arising after the adoption of this Constitu- tion. History of Georgia 425 (The General Assembly has changed most of these salaries. This section of the constitution has also been amended to enable the counties of Chatham, Fulton, and Richmond to increase the salaries of the judges of the circuits in which they lie to five thousand dollars a year.) 2. How Salaries may be Changed. — The General Assembly may at any time, by a two-thirds vote of each branch, prescribe other and dif- ferent salaries for any, or all, of the above officers, but no such change shall affect the officers then in commission. Section XIV. Qualification of Judges, etc. I. Qualifications. — No person shall be judge of the Supreme or su- perior courts or attorney-general, unless, at the time of his election, he shall have attained the age of thirty years, and shall have been a citizen of the State three years, and have practiced law for seven years; and no person shall be hereafter elected solicitor-general, unless, at the time of his election, he shall have attained twenty-five years of age, shall have been a citizen of the State for three years, and shall have prac- ticed law for three years next preceding his election. Section XV. Divorce. 1. Divorce. — No total divorce shall be granted, except on the con- current verdicts of two juries at different terms of the court. 2. Last Jury Determines Disabilities. — When a divorce is granted, the jury rendering the final verdict shall determine the rights and dis- abilities of the parties. Section XVI. Venue. 1. Divorce Cases, Where Brought. — Divorce cases shall be brought in the county where the defendant resides, if a resident of this State ; if the defendant be not a resident of this State, then in the county in which the plaintiff resides. 2. Land, Titles, Where Tried. — Cases respecting titles to land shall be tried in the county where the land lies, except where a single tract is divided by a county line, in which case the superior court in either county shall have jurisdiction. 3. Equity Cases. — Equity cases shall be tried in the county where a defendant resides against whom substantial relief is prayed. 4. Suits Against Joint Obligors, etc. — Suits against joint obligors, joint promisors, copartners, or joint trespassers, residing in different counties, may be tried in either county. 5. Suits Against Maker and Indorser. etc. — Suits against the maker and indorser of promissory notes, or drawer, acceptor and indorser of foreign or inland bills of exchange, or like instruments, residing in different counties, shall be brought in the county where the maker or acceptor resides. 426 History of Georgia 6. All Other Cases. — All other civil cases shall be tried in the county where the defendant resides, and all criminal cases shall be tried in the county where the crime was committed, except cases in the superior courts where the judge is satisfied that an impartial jury cannot be obtained in such county. Section XVII. Change of Venue. I. Power to Change Venue. — The power to change the venue in civil and criminal cases shall be vested in the superior courts, to be exercised in such manner as has been, or shall be, provided by law. Section XVIII. Jury Trials. 1. Trial by Jury. — The right of trial by jury, except where it is otherwise provided in this Constitution, shall remain inviolate, but the General Assembly may prescribe any number, not less than five, to constitute a trial or traverse jury in courts other than the superior and city courts. 2. Selection of Jurors. — The General Assembly shall provide by law for the selection of the most experienced, intelligent and upright men to serve as grand jurors, and intelligent and upright men to serve as traverse jurors. Nevertheless, the grand jurors shall be competent to serve as traverse jurors. 3. Compensation of Jurors. — It shall be the duiy of the General Assembly, by general laws, to prescribe the manner of fixing com- pensation of jurors in all counties in this State. Section XIX. County Commissioners. I. Power to Create County Commissioners. — The General Assembly shall have power to provide for the creation of county commissioners in such counties as may require them, and to define their duties. Section XX. W^'hat Courts May Be Abolished. I. Power to Abolish Courts. — All courts not specially mentioned by \ name in the first section of this Article may be abolished in any county, ' at the discretion of the General Assembly. Section XXI. Supreme Court Costs. I. Costs in Supreme Court. — The costs in the Supreme Court shall not exceed ten dollars, until otherwise provided by law. Plaintiffs in error shall not be required to pay costs in said court when the usual pauper oath is filed in the court below. ARTICLE VII. FINANCE, TAXATION AND PUBLIC DEBT. Section I. Power of Taxation. I. Taxation, How and for What Purpose Exercised. — ^The pow(?rs History of Georgia 427 of taxation over the whole State shall be exercised by the General As- sembly for the following purposes only: For the support of the State government and the public institutions. For educational purposes, in instructing children in the elementary branches of an English education only. To pay the interest on the public debt. To pay the principal of the public debt. To suppress insurrection, to repel invasion, and defend the State in time of war. To supply the soldiers who lost a limb, or limbs, in the military service of the Confederate States, with substantial artificial limbs during life, and to make suitable provision for such Confederate Idiers as may have been otherwise disabled or permanently injured in such service; or who, by reason of age and poverty, or infirmity and poverty, or blind- ness and poverty, are unable to provide a living for themselves; and for the widows of such Confederate soldiers as may have died in the service of Confederate States, or since from wounds received therein, or disease contracted therein: Provided, this paragraph shall only apply to such widows as were married at the time of such service and have re- mained unmarried since the death of such soldier husbands. To make provision for the payment of pensions to any ex-Confed- erate soldier, now resident of this State, who enlisted in the military service of this State, or who enlisted in the military service of the Con- federate States, during the civil war between the States of the United States, and who performed actual military service in the armies of the Confederate States, or the organized militia of this State, and was hon- orably discharged therefrom, and to widows, now residents of this State, of ex-Confederate soldiers who enlisted in the military service of this State, or who enlisted in the military service of the Confederate States, and who performed actual service in the armies of the Confederate States, or of the organized militia of this State, who died in said military service, or was honorably discharged therefrom: Provided, that no per- son shall be entitled to the provisions of this Constitutional amendment the total value of whose property, of every description, including money and choses in action, shall exceed fifteen hundred dollars, and provided further, that only those widows who were married to such soldier or ex-soldier previous to the year 1870 shall be entitled to the provisions of this Constitutional amendment. No widow of a soldier killed during the war shall be deprived of her pension by reason of having subse- quently married another veteran, who is dead, unless she receives a pen- sion on account of being the widow of such second husband. (This pension system is the result of a number of amendments, adopted in 1885, 1889, 1900, 1909, and 1912.) 2. Levy of Taxes Limited. — The levy of taxes on property for any one year by the General Assembly for all purposes, except to provide for repelling invasion, suppressing insurrection, or defending the State in 4^8 History of Georgia time of war, shall not exceed five mills on each dollar o£ the value of the property taxable in the State. (Amendment of 1904.) Section II. Taxation and Exemptions. 1. Must be Uniform, etc. — All taxation shall be uniform upon the same class of subjects, and ad 'valorem, on all property subject to be taxed within the territorial limits of the authority levying the tax, and shall be levied and collected under general laws. The General Assem- bly may, however, impose a tax upon such domestic animals as, from their nature and habits, are destructive of other property. 2. Exemptions. — The General Assembly may, by law, exempt from taxation all public property, places of religious worship or burial ; all institutions of purely public charity; all buildings erected for and used as a college, incorporated academy, or other seminary of learning; the real and personal estate of any public library, and that of any other lit- erary association, used by or connected with such library; all books and philosophical apparatus; and all paintings and statuary of any company or association, kept in a public hall, and not held as merchan- dise, or for purposes of sale or gain: Provided, the property so ex- empted be not used for purposes of private or corporate profit or income. The General Assembly shall, further, have power to exempt from taxa- tion farm products, including baled cotton, grown in this State and re- maining in the hands of the producer, but not longer than for the year next after their production. (As amended in 1912.) 3. Poll Tax. — No poll tax shall be levied except for educational pur- poses, and such tax shall not exceed one dollar annually, upon each poll. 4. Laws Exempting Property Void. — All laws exempting property from taxation, other than the property herein enumerated, shall be void. 5. Tax on Corporations. — The power to tax corporations and cor- porate property shall not be surrendered or suspended by any contract or grant to which the State shall be a party. 6. All persons or classes of persons who were, by laws of force, Jan- uary ist, 1911, required to make returns for taxation to the comptroller- general, and all who may hereafter be so required, shall, on or before the first day of March of each year, make such returns as of date of January ist of that year, and shall pay the taxes arising on such re- turns in favor of the State on or before the first of September of the same year. Section III. State Debt. I. Debts; for What Contracted. — No debt shall be contracted by or on behalf of the State, except to supply such temporary deficit as may exist in the Treasury in any year from necessary delay in collecting the taxes of that year, to repel invasion, suppress insurrection, and de- fend the State in time of war, or to pay the existing public debt; but the debt created to supply deficiencies in revenue shall not exceed, in History of Georgia 429 the aggregate, five hundred thousand dollars, and any loan made for this purpose shall be repaid out of the taxes levied for the year in which the loan is made. (As amended in 1912.) Section IV. Debt, How Contracted, I. Form of Laws to Borrow Money. — All laws authorizing the bor- rowing of money by or on behalf of the State shall specify the purposes for which the money is to be used, and the money so obtained shall be used for the purpose specified, and for no other. Section V. State Aid. I. State Aid Forbidden. — The credit of the State shall not be pledged or loaned by any individual, company, corporation or association, and the State shall not become a joint owner or stockholder in any company, association or corporation. Section VI. Purposes of Taxation by Counties and Cities. 1. Restrictions on Counties and Cities. — The General Assembly shall not authorize any county, municipal corporation, or political divi- sion of this State, to become a stockholder in any company, corporation, or association, or to appropriate money for, or to loan its credit to, any corporation, company, association, institution, or individual, except for purely charitable purposes. This restriction shall not operate to prevent the support of schools by municipal corporations within their respective limits: Provided, that if any municipal corporation shall offer to the State any property for locating or building a capitol, and the State accepts such offer, the corporation may comply with such offer. 2. Taxing Power of Counties Limited. — The General Assembly shall not have power to delegate to any county the right to levy a tax for any purpose, except for educational purposes; to build and repair the public buildings and bridges; to maintain and support prisoners; to pay jurors and coroners, and for litigation, quarantine, roads and expenses of courts; to support paupers and pay debts heretofore existing; to pay the county police, and to provide for necessary sanitation. (As amended in 1910.) Section VII. Limitation on Municipal Debts. I. Debt of Counties and Cities Not to Exceed Seven Per Cent. — The debt hereafter incurred by any county, municipal corporation, or political division of this State, except as in this Constitution provided for, shall not exceed seven per centum of the assessed value of all the taxable property therein, and no such county, municipality, or division, shall incur any new debt, except for a temporary loan or loans to supply casual deficiencies of revenue, not to exceed one-fifth of one per centum of the assessed value of taxable property therein, without the assent of two- thirds of the qualified voters thereof, at an election for that purpose, to 430 History of Georgia be held as may be prescribed by law; but any city, the debt of which does not exceed seven per centum of the assessed value of the taxable property at the time of the adoption of this Constitution, may be author- ized by law to increase, at any time, the amount of said debt, three per centum upon such assessed valuation. (An amendment in 1900 per- mits Augusta to increase its debt for protection against floods.) 2. County and City Bonds, How Paid. — Any county, municipal cor- poration, or political division of this State, which shall incur any bonded indebtedness under the provisions of this Constitution, shall, at or before the time of so doing, provide for the assessment and collection of an annual tax, sufficient in amount to pay the principal and interest of said debt within thirty years from the date of the incurring of said indebt- edness. Section VIII. Assumption of Debt. I. Assumption of Debts Forbidden. — The State shall not assume the debt, nor any part thereof, of any county, municipal corporation, or po- litical division of the State, unless such debt shall be contracted to enable the State to repel invasion, suppress insurrection, or defend itself in time of war. Section IX. Public Money. 1. Profit on Public Money. — The receiving, directly or indirectly, by any officer of the State or county, or member or officer of the General Assembly, of any interests, profits or perquisites arising from the use or loan of public funds in his hands, or moneys to be raised through his agency for State or county purposes, shall be deemed a felony, and pun- ishable as may be prescribed by law, a part of which punishment shall be a disqualification from holding office. Section X. City Debts. 1. City Debts, How Incurred.- — Municipal corporations shall not incur any debt until provision therefor shall have been made by the municipal government. Section XL Void Bonds. 1. Certain Bonds Shall Not be Pajd. — The General Assembly shall have no authority to appropriate money, directly or indirectly, to pay the whole, or any part, of the principal or interest of the bonds, or other obligations, which have been pronounced illegal, null and void, by the General Assembly, and the constitutional amendments ratified by a vote of the people on the first day of May, 1877; nor shall the General As- sembly have authority to pay any of the obligations created by the State under laws passed during the late war between the States, nor any of the bonds, notes, or obligations made and entered into during the exist- ence of said war, the time for the payment of which was fixed after the History of Georgia 431 ratification of a treaty of peace between the United States and the Con- federate States; nor shall the General Assembly pass any law, or the Governor, or other State official, enter into any contract or agreement, whereby the State shall be made a party to any suit in any court of this State, or of the United States, instituted to test the validity of any such bonds or obligations. Section XII. Public Debt Not to be Increased. 1. Bonded Debt Not to Increase. — The bonded debt of the State shall never be increased, except to repel invasion, suppress insurrection, or to defend the State in time of war. Section XIII. Public Property Pledged for State's Debt. I. State's Property May be Sold to Pay Bonded Debt, — The pro- ceeds of the sale of the Western and Atlantic, Macon and Brunswick, or other railroads held by the State, and any other property owned by the State, whenever the General Assembly may authorize the sale of the whole, or any part thereof, shall be applied to the payment of the bonded debt of the State, and shall not be used for any other purpose whatever, so long as the State has any existing bonded debt: Pro'vided, that the proceeds of the sale of the Western and Atlantic Railroad shall be ap- plied to the payment of the bonds for which said railroad has been mortgaged, in preference to all other bonds. Section XIV. Sinking Fund. I. Sinking Fund. — The General Assembly shall raise by taxation each year, in addition to the sum required to pay the public expenses and in- terests on the public debt, the sum of one hundred thousand dollars, which shall be held as a sinking fund to pay off and retire the bonds of the State which have not yet matured, and shall be applied to no other purpose whatever. If the bonds cannot at any time be purchased at or below par, then the sinking fund, herein provided for, may be loaned by the Governor and treasurer of the State: Provided, the se- curity which shall be demanded for said loan shall consist only of the valid bonds of the State; but this section shall not take effect until the eight per cent currency bonds, issued under the Act of February 19th, 1873, shall have been paid. Section XV. Reports. I. Quarterly Reports of Comptroller and Treasurer. — The comp- troller-general and treasurer shall each make to the Governor a quar- terly report of the financial condition of the State, which report shall include a statement of the assets, liabilities and income of the State, and expenditures therefor, for the three months preceding; and it shall be the duty of the Governor to carefully examine the same by himself, or through competent persons connected with his department , an \ 432 History of Georgia cause an abstract thereof to be published for the information of the people, which abstract shall be indorsed by him as having been ex- amined. Section XVI. Donations. 1. Donations Forbidden. — The General Assembly shall not, by vote, resolution, or order, grant any donation, or gratuity, in favor of any person, corporation, or association. 2. Extra Compensation Forbidden. — The General Assembly shall not grant or authorize extra compensation to any public officer, agent or contractor, after the service has been rendered, or the contract entered into. Section XVII. Public Printing. I. Public Printing. — The office of the State printer shall cease with the expiration of the term of the present incumbent, and the General Assembly shall provide, by law, for letting the public printing to the lowest responsible bidder, or bidders, who shall give adequate and satisfactory security for the faithful performance thereof. No member of the General Assembly, or other public officer, shall be interested, either directly or indirectly, in any such contract. ARTICLE VIII. EDUCATION. Section I. Common Schools, I. Common Schools. — There shall be a thorough system of common schools for the education of children, as nearly uniform as practicable, the expenses of which shall be provided for by taxation, or otherwise. The schools shall be free to all children of the Stale, but reparate schools shall be provided for the white and colored races. (As amended in 1912.) Section II. School Commissioner. I. State School Commissioner. — There shall be a State school com- missioner, elected by the people at the same time and manner as the Governor and State House officers are elected, whose term of office shall be two years, and until his successor is elected and qualified. His office shall be at the seat of government, and he shall be paid a salary not to exceed two thousand dollars per annum. The General Assembly may substitute for the State school commissioner such officer, or officers, as may be deemed necessary to perfect the system of public education. (Prior to Amendment of 1896, the commissioner was appointed by the governor.) Section III. School Fund. I. School Fund. — The poll tax, any educational fund now belonging to the State (except the endowment of, and debt due to, the University History of Georgia 433 of Georgia), a special tax on shows and exhibitions, and on the sale of spirituous and malt liquors, which the General assembly is hereby authorized to assess, and the proceeds of any commutation tax for mili- tary service, and all taxes that may be assessed on such domestic animals as, from their nature and habits, are destructive to other property, are hereby set apart and devoted for the support of common schools. Section IV. Educational Tax. I. Local Taxation for Public Schools. — Authority may be granted to counties, militia districts, school districts, and to municipal corpora- tions upon the recommendation of the corporate authority, to establish and maintain public schools in their respective limits, by local taxation; but no such local laws shall take effect until the same shall have been submitted to a vote of the qualified voters in each county, militia dis- trict, school district, or municipal corporation, and approved by a two- thirds majority of those voting at such election; and the General As- sembly may prescribe who shall vote on such questions. (Militia dis- tricts and school districts added by amendment of 1904.) Section V. Local Systems. I. Local Schools not Affected. — Existing local school systems shall not be affected by this Constitution. Nothing contained in first section of this article shall be construed to deprive schools in this State, not common schools, from participation in the educational fund of the State, as to all pupils therein taught in the elementary branches of an English education. Section VL University of Georgia. I. State University. — The trustees of the University of Georgia may accept bequests, donations and grants of land, or other property, for the use of said University. In addition to the payment of the annual interest on the debt due by the State to the University, the General Assembly may, from time to time, make such donations thereto as the condition of the treasury will authorize. And the General Assembly may also, from time to time, make such appropriations of money as the condition of the treasury will authorize, to any college or university (not exceeding one in number) now established, or hereafter to be es- tablished, in this State for the education of persons of color. ARTICLE IX. HOMESTEAD AND EXEMPTIONS. Section I. Homestead. I. Homestead and Exemption. — There shall be e: empt from levy and sale, by virtue of any process whatever under the laws of this State, excep*^ as hereinafter excepted, of the property of every head of 434 History of Georgia a family, or guardian or trustee of a family of minor children, or every aged or infirm person, or person having the care and support of dependent females of any age, who is not the head of the family, realty or personalty, or both, to the value in the aggregate of sixteen hundred dollars. Section II. Exemption. I. Protection Guaranteed. — No court or ministerial officer in this State shall ever have jurisdiction or authority to enforce any judgment, execution or decree, against the property set apart for such purpose, in- cluding such improvements as may be made thereon from time to time, except for taxes, for the purchase money of the same, for labor done thereon, for material furnished therefor, or for the removal of incum- brances thereon. Section III. Waiver of Homestead. I. May Be Waived, How Far; How Sold. — The debtor shall have power to waive or renounce in writing his right to the benefit of the ex- emption provided for in this Article, except as to wearing apparel, and not exceeding three hundred dollars worth of household and kitchen furniture, and provisions, to I e selected by himself and his wife, if any, and he shall not, after it is set apart, alienate or encumber the property so exempted, but it may be sold by the debtor, and his wife, if any, jointly, with the sanction of the judge of the superior court of the county where the debtor resides or the land is situated, the proceeds to be reinvested upon the same uses. Section IV. Homestead Set Apart, How. 1. Setting Apart Short Homestead. — The General Assembly shall provide, by law, as early as practicable, for the setting apart and valu- ation of said property. But nothing in this Article shall be construed to affect or repeal the existing laws for exemption of property from sale, contained in the present Code of this State, in paragraphs 2040 to 2049, inclusive, and the acts amendatory thereto. It may be optional with the applicant to take either, but not both, of such exemptions. Section V. Short Homestead Waived. I. Short Homestead may be Waived. — The debtor shall have author- ity to waive or renounce in writing his right to the benefit of the ex- emption provided for in section four, except as is excepted in section three of this Article,. Section VI. Homestead Supplemented. I. Supplemental Homestead. — The applicant shall at any time have the right to supplement his exemption by adding to an amount already set apart, which is less than the whole amount of exemption herein allowed, a sufficiency to make his exemption equal to the whole amount. History of Georgia 435 Section VII. Former Homesteads Preserved. I. Homesteads Heretofore Set Apart, — Homesteads and exemptions of personal property which have been heretofore set apart by virtue of the provisions of the existing Constitution of this State, and in ac- cordance with the laws for the enforcement thereof, or which may be hereafter so set apart, at any time, shall be and remain valid aj against all debts and liabilities existing at the time of the adoption of this Constitution, to the same extent that they would have been had said existing Constitution not been revised. Section VIII. Prior Rights to Exemption Preserved. I. Vested Rights Protected. — Rights which have become vested under previously existing laws shall not be affected by anything herein con- tained. In all cases in which homesteads have been set apart under the Constitution of 1868, and the laws made in pursuance thereof, and a bona fide sale of such property has been subsequently made and the full purchase price thereof has been paid, all right of exemption in such property by reason of its having been so set apart shall cease in so far as it affects the right of the purchaser. In all such cases where a part only of the purchase price has been paid, such transactions shall be governed by the laws now of force in this State, in so far as they affect the rights of the purchaser, as though said property had not been set apart. Section IX. Sale of Homestead. 1. Sale and Reinvestment of Homestead. — Parties who have taken a homestead of realty under the Constitution of 1868 shall have the right to sell said homestead and reinvest the same, by order of the judge of the superior courts of this State. ARTICLE X. MILITIA. Section I. Militia and Volunteers. 1. Organization of Militia. — A well regulated militia being essen- tial to the peace and security of the State, the General Assembly shall have authority to provide by law how the militia of this State shall be organized, officered, trained, armed, and equipped; and of whom it shall consist. 2. Volunteers.— The General Assembly shall have power to author- ize the formation of volunteer companies, and provide for their organ- ization into battalions, regiments, brigades, divisions and corps, with such restrictions as may be prescribed by law, and shall have authoritv to arm and equip the same. 3. Pay of Militia. — The officers and men of the militia and volunteer 436 History of Georgia forces shall not be entitled to receive any pay, rations, or emoluments, when not in active service by authority of the State. ARTICLE XL COUNTIES AND COUNTY OFFICERS. Section I. Counties. 1. Counties are Corporate Bodies, — Each county shall be a body corporate, with such powers and limitations as may be prescribed by law. All suits by or against a county shall be in the name thereof; and the metes and bounds of the several counties shall remain as now pre- scribed by law, unless changed as hereinafter provided. 2. New Counties. — No new county shall be created. (An amend- ment of 1904 changed this paragraph to the following: There shall not be more than 145 counties in this State. But an amendment of 1906 added a new county, Ben Hill ; and another amendment in 1912 added Wheeler and Bleckley counties, so that there are now 148 counties.) 3. Change of County Lines. — County lines shall not be changed unless under the operation of a general law for that purpose. 4. Change of County Sites. — No county site shall be changed or re- moved except by a two-thirds vote of the qualified voters of the county, voting at an election held for that purpose, and a two-thirds vote of the General Assembly. 5. Dissolution of Counties. — Any county may be dissolved and merged with contiguous counties by a two-thirds vote of the qualified electors of such county, voting at an election held for that purpose. Section II. County Officers. I. County Officers. — The county officers shall be elected by the qualified voters of their respective counties, or districts, and shall hold their offices for two years. They shall be removed on conviction for malpractice in office, and no person shall be eligible to any of the offices referred to in this paragraph, unless he shall have been a resident of the county for two years and is a qualified voter. Section III. Uniformity in County Officfrs. 1, County Officers to be Uniform. — Whatever tribunal, or officers, may hereafter be created by the General Assembly for the transaction of county matters shall be uniform throughout the State, and of the same name, jurisdiction and remedies, except that the General Assembly may provide for the appointment of commissioners of roads and revenues in any county. Section IV. State Capital. I. Capital in Atlanta. — The city of Atlanta shall be the capital of History of Georgia 437 the State, until changed by the sanme authority, and in the same way, that is provided for the alteration of this Constitution. ARTICLE XII. THE LAWS OF GENERAL OPERATION IN FORCE IN THIS STATE. Section i. 1. Supreme Law, What Is. — The laws of general operation in this State are, first, as the supreme law: The Constitution of the United States, the laws of the United States in pursuance thereof, and all treaties made under the authority of the United States. 2. Second in Authoriity. — Second, as next in authority thereto: This Constitution. 3. Third in Authority. — Third, in subordination to the foregoing: All laws now of force in this State, not inconsistent with this Constitu- tion, and the ordinances of this Convention, shall remain of force until the same are modified or repealed by the General Assembly. The tax acts and appropriation acts passed by the General Assembly of 1877, and approved by the Governor of the State, and not inconsistent with the Constitution, are hereby continued in force until altered by law. 4. Local and Private Acts. — Local and private acts passed for the benefit of counties, cities, towns, corporations, and private persons, not inconsistent with the supreme law, nor with this Constitution, and which have not expired nor been repealed, shall have the force of statute law, subject to judicial decision as to their validity when passed, and to any limitations imposed by their own terms. 5. Vested Rights Secured. — All rights,' privileges and immunities which may have been vested in, or accrued to any person or persons, or corporation in his, her or their own right, or in any fiduciary capacity, under and in virtue of any act of the General Assembly, or any judg- ment, decree or order, or other proceeding of any court of competent jurisdiction in this State, heretofore rendered, shall be held inviolate by all courts before which they may be brought in question, unless attacked for fraud. 6. Acts of Courts Confirmed. — All judgments, decrees, orders, and other proceedings, of the several courts of this State heretofore made, within the limits of their several jurisdictions, are hereby ratified and affirmed, subject only to reversal by motion for a new trial, appeal, bill of review, 01; other proceeding, in conformity with the law of force when they were made. 7. Existing Officers. — The officers of the government now existing shall continue in the exercise of their several functions until their suc- cessors are duly elected or appointed, and qualified; but nothing herein is to apply to any officer whose office may be abolished by this Con- stitution. 8. Ordinances. — The ordinances of this Convention shall have the force of laws until otherwise provided by the General Assembly, except 438 History of Georgia the ordinances in reference to submitting the homestead and capital question to a vote of the people, which ordinances, after being voted on, shall have the effect of constitutional provisions. ARTICLE XIII. AMENDMENTS TO THE CONSTITUTION. Section I. X. Constitution, How Amended. — Any amendment or amendments to this constitution may be proposed in the Senate or House of Repre- sentatives, and if the same shall be agreed to, by two-thirds of the mem- bers elected to each of the two houses, such proposed amendment or amendments shall be entered on their journals, with the yeas and nays taken thereon. And the General Assembly shall cause such amendment or amendments to be published in one or more newspapers in each con- gressional district, for two months previous to the time of holding the next general election, and shall also provide for a submission of such proposed amendment or amendments to the people at said next general election, and if the people shall ratify such amendment or amendments, by a majority of the electors qualified to vote for members of the General Assembly, voting thereon, such amendment or amendments shall become part of this Constitution. When more than one amend- ment is submitted at the same time, they shall be so submitted as to enable the electors to vote on each amendment separately. 2. Convention, How Called. — No convention of the people shall be called by the General Assembly to revise, amend, or change this Constitu- tion unless by a concurrence of two-thirds of all the members of each house of the General Assembly. The representation in said convention shall be based on population as near as practicable. Section II. (This section provides for the submission of the Constitution to a vote of the people, for ratification or rejection.) The Constitution was ratified by a vote of the people at an election held on the fifth day of December, 1877. The Convention which adopted the Constitution met on the eleventh day of July, and adjourned on the twenty-fifth day of August, 1877. The amendments that have been adopted are incorporated in the Con- stitution as above given, and the dates of the more important amend- ments are inserted. Students may compare the original with the amended paragraphs by referring to McElreath's Treatise on the Con- stitution of Georgia. INDEX Agriculture, see cotton, rice, slav- ery, land tenure, negroes, tenancy. Andrews, Bishop J. O., 221. Antifederalist party, 165, 166. Appeals, Court of, 387. Articles of Confederation, 130. Atlanta, 275; burned by Sherman, 290; rapid growth of, 337. Augusta, founded, 52; taken by British, n8; recapture by Amer- icans, 122. B Baldwin, Abraham, in Federal Con- vention, 1787, 133; sketch of, 133; Yazoo Commissioner, i6i. Barton, Francis S., 288. Berrien, John M., sketch of, 174. Bethesda Orphanage, 58. Black Belt, 207, seq. Bleckley, L. E., 374. Blodgett, Foster, 307, 317. Bloody Marsh, battle of, 77. Boundaries, charter, 45 ; dispute with Spanish in Florida, 69; St. Mary's River made southern boundary, 87; dispute with South Carolina settled, 151; dispute over western lands, 152. Broad River, Virginians settle, on, 142. Brown, J. E., sketch of, 285. Brown, J. M., sketch of, 363. Bulloch, Archibald, sketch of, 116; delegate to Continental Congress, in. Bullock, R. B., 307, 311, 312, 315. Carolinians settled in North Cieor- gia, 141. '"Carpetbagger," 308. Central of Georgia R. R., 274. Charter of Colony of Georgia, an- alyzed, 42, seq. Cherokee Indians, original boun- daries, 195; early cessions, 195; progress in civilization, 196; ex- tension of Georgia laws over, 199; struggle in the courts, 199; President Jackson's attitude, 202 ; Governor Lumpkin, 202; final treaty, 205. Civil government of Georgia, 377, seq. Civil War, 287, seq. Clarke, Elijah, in Revolution, 118, 121 ; in politics, 170. Clarke, John, sketch of, 171 ; leader of Clarke party, 171. Clay, Henry, 241. Coastal plain, 11. Cobb, Howell, advocates Clay's Compromise of 1850, 243; sketch of, 243; elected governor, 244; advocates secession, 261 ; Presi- dent Montgomery Convention, 264; re-organized Democratic party, 309. Cobb, T. R. R., 263, 265, 287. Compromise of 1850, 241, 243. Constitution of the United States, movement for a new, 131 ; Fed- eral Convention, 131; compro- mises, 132; ratification by Geor- gia, 139; Amendments to, 300, 307, 314- 430 440 History of Georgia Constitution of Georgia, 1877, 124; 1789, 137; 1798, 137; i86i, 1865, 1868, 337; 1877, 378, seq. Convict lease system, 354, seq. Cotton, 208, 214, 219; reasons why slave labor adapted to produc- tion of, 227, 321, 322; fall of the plantation system, 324; tenant system of farming, 329. Cotton gin, invention of, 211 Council of Safety, in Revolution, 123. Crawford, Wm. H., 157; sketch of, 170. Creek Indians, original boundaries, 181; land cessions under colonial and state governments, 182; Creek War, 183; final cession, 190. D Darien, founded, 53. Declaration of Independence, Geor- gia signers, 113. Democratic Party, 166, 178, 250, 360, 362. See political parties. Democratic-Republican Party, 166. Dorchester Colony, 91. Douglas, Stephen A., 245. Dred Scott Decision, 246. E Education, ante-bellum, 277, seq.; public schools inaugurated, 322; agricultural, 333; growth of public school system; 343, seq.; State Board of, 347; list of State Superintendents of, 347. Education, State Board of, 347. Elbert, Samuel, 118. Ellis, Henry, royal governor, 85. Emigrants, first to Georgia, 47; from Virginia and Carolina, 141. See also Salzburgers, Moravians, Scots, Scotch-Irish. Emory College, 281. England, conditions in at time of founding of Georgia, 33, seq. English Church established in Georgia, 86. Estaing, Count d', 120. F Fall line, 9. Federalist Party, 165, 167. Few, Benjamin, 118. Few, William, u8; signs the Fed- eral Constitution, 1787, 132. Fifteenth Amendment, 314. Forsyth, John, sketch of, 176. Fourteenth Amendment, rejected, 306; accepted, 307. Frederica, founded, 53 ; attacked by Spanish, 76. Freedmen's Bureau, 304. G Galphin, George, 144. Geography, physical, of Georgia, 5, seq. "Georgia Platform," 244. Georgia R. R., 273. Gilmer, G. R., "Georgians" quoted, 148 ; policy towards Cherokees while governor, 204. Gordon, John B., 287, 311. Government, under Trustee, 54; as Crown Province, 83 ; under Con- stitution of 1777, 126; Constitu- tions of 1789 and 1798, 137; under Constitution of 1877, 378, seq. Grady, H. A., 370. Gwinnett, Button, signer of Dec- laration of Independence, 113; sketch of, 124. H Habersham, James, sketch of, S6\ favors introduction of slavery^ 66', large planter, 93; maintains allegiance to King George, 107. History of Georgia 441 Habersham, Joseph, iii; arrests Governor Wright, 113. Hall, Lyman, delegate to Conti- nental Congress, 112; sketch of, US- Head Rights, system of land distri- bution, 141, 143. Eiill, B. H., opposes secession, 256; candidate for governor, 1857, 284; sketch of, 309, 315. Hill, W. B, 374. Houston, John, 107; sketch of, iii; delegate to Continental Congress, III. Huger, Isaac, in attack on Savan- nah, 1779, 121. Indented servant, 64. Indians, aboriginal life, 17, seq. ; mounds, 27. See also Cherokees and Creeks. J Jackson, Andrew, crushes nullifica- tion movement, 174; his enemies create Whig Party, 178; as In- dian fighter, 188; attitude to- wards Cherokee controversy while President, 202. Jackson, James, 116, 121, 122, 123; fights Yazoo Fraud, 158; sketch, 158; leader of aristocratic party, 170. Jenkins, C. J., 301. Johnson, H. V., opposes secession, 256; sketch of, 300. Jones, Noble, 108. Jones, N. W., sketch of, 107 ; breaks into powder magazine in Savan- nah, m; delegate to Continental Congress, 112. K Ku Klux, 326. Land Lottery, 185. Land tenure in colonial times, 58 ; repeal of land law, 63 ; post- bellum tenancy, 329, seq. Lanier, Sidney, 368. Lee, Richard Henry, in Revolution, 122. Lincoln, Benjamin, 119; attacks Savannah, 120. Long, Crawford W., 366. Longstreet, J. L., 287. Louisville made the capital, 144. Lumpkin, Wilson, sketch of, 202 ; Indian relations, 204. M McDonald, Charles J., 245. Mcintosh, Lachlan, at attack on Sa- vannah, 1779, 120. Manual Labor Schools, ante-bel- lum, 279. Manufactures, in ante-bellum pe- riod, 228, 268 ; in post-bellum period, 341. Marshall, John, Chief Justice, de- cision in Cherokee case, 200, 202. Mercer University, 280, 283. Middle Georgia, settled by Vir- ginians and Carolinians, 141. Milledge, John, in; Yazoo Com- missioner, 161; sketch, 161. Milledgeville made the capital, 144; Sherman in, 293. Missouri compromise, 258. Moravians, 52. Musgrove, Mary, 49. N Negroes, enfranchised, 307 ; educa- tion of, 323; landownership, 331; convict system, 354; disfran- chised, 358. See slavery. North Georgia, settled by Virgin- ians and Carolinians, 141. U2 History of Georgia Northen, W. J., 361. Nullification, 173 ; effect on state politics, 174, seq. O Oglethorpe, sketch of, 40; treats with Indians, 48 ; in Spanish War, 69, seq. Oglethorpe University, 281. Orr, G. J., 343. Physical geography of Georgia, 5, seq. Piedmont region, 9. Pierce, G. F., 369. Pierce, Lovick, opposes secession, 258. Political Parties, Federalist and Anti-Federalist, 165-6; Demo- cratic-Republican, 166; Troup and Clarke factions, 170, seq.: Union and State Rights, 172; Whig and Democratic, 178 ; Re- publican, 247, 250; Constitu- tional, Union and Southern Rights, 244-5 ; solid Democracy, 360, 362; Populist, 360. "Poor schools," 279. Population statistics, colonial, 90; in 1790, 142; in 1810, 267; in i860, 267; in 1910, 336. Prisons for debt, 36. Prohibition, colonial, 61 ; repealed, 64; Act of, 1907, 357. Public schools inaugurated, 323, 343; local taxation, 344; il- literacy, 346; State Board of Ed- ucation, 347. Pulaski, Count, 120. Railroads, ante-bellum, 273. Reconstruction, presidential, 300; congressional, 306; Bullock, gov- ernor, 307; character of recon- struction government, 316; fail- ure of, 317. Religion, charter provisions, 45; English Church established, 86; freedom of guaranteed, constitu- tion of 1777, 127. Republican Party, origin of, 247, 250. Revolutionary War, causes, loi ; division of sentiment in Georgia, 105; preliminary activities, 107; fall of Savannah, 115; British Conquest of North Georgia, u8; Battle of Brier Creek, 119; Battle of Kettle Creek, 119; Americans and French attack Savannah. 120; Evacuation of Savannah, 123. Reynolds, John, royal governor, 85. Rice, 93, 99,^ loi, 268, 325. Royal Province, Georgia becomes, 83. St. Augustine, besieged by Geor- gians, 74; Salzburgers, 49. Savannah, founded, 48; fall of, in 1778, 115; attacked by Ameri- cans and French, 120; evacuated by British, 123 ; the Central of Georgia R. R., 274; besieged by Sherman, 294. Seacoast, 12. Secession, 251, seq.; convention, 260; vote, 262. "Scalawag," 308. Schools, See Education. Scotch-Irish come to Georgia, 143. Scotch settle on the Altamaha, 53. Sherman, W. T., in Georgia, 289. seq. Silk, failure of efforts to produce, 97- Slaton, John M., sketch of, 364. History of Georgia 443 Slavery, prohibited in colony, 59; allowed, 67; colonial slave code, 95 ; member of in colonial pe- riod, 90; effect of cotton indus- try on, 213 ; treatment of slaves in 19th century, 220; slavehold- ing families, 226; slave prices, 228; low character of labor, 230; effect on soil, 231; on society, 232; in politics, 237, seq. ; civil war, 254; slaves emancipated by Thirteenth Amendment, 300. See negroes. Smith, Hoke, sketch of, 361. Soto, Hernando de, expedition through Georgia, 22. South Carolina, Georgia carved from, 45; slavery in, 60; Geor- gians move to, 71 ; niggardly support of Oglethorpe in Span- ish War, 74; Beauford Conven- tion, 151; nullification in, 173. Squatter sovereignty, 242; in the Charleston Democratic Conven- ton, i86o, 250. Spanish invad?* Georgia, 75. Stage coaches, 273. Stamp Act, Georgians resist, 103. Steamboats, 271. Stephens, A. H., advocates compro- mise of 1850, 243 ; sketch of, 256; opposes secession, 258, 264. Stephens, William, sketch of, 55. Suffrage, educational and property qualifications, 379. Supreme Court, established, 283. Tariff, Protective, influence on politics, 173. Tax Laws, reform in administra- tion, 358. Telfair, Edward, iii. Thirteenth Amendment, 300. Tenant system, 329, seq. Tomo Chi Chi, 48; visits England, 49. Toombs, Robert, supports compro- mise of 1850, 243; sketch of, 260; advocates secession, 260; and presidency of Southern Confed- eracy, 264; Secretary of State, 265; reorganizes Democratic Party, 309. Transportation before railroads, 270. Treutlen, John Adam, 128. Troup, George M., 161, 163; leader of Troup party, 171 ; sketch of, 189; removes Creek Indians from Georgia, 189, seq. Trustees of Colony, appointed, 42 ; resign, 8i. Twiggs, John, 118. U University of Georgia, 281, 349. Virginians settle in North Georgia, 141. w Walker, W. H. T., 288. Walton, George, signer of Dec- laration of Independence, 113, 117; elected delegate to Federal Convention, 1787, 132. Walton, John, 108. War Between the States, 287, seq. Watson, T. E., 361, 362. Wesley, John and Charles, 71. Western & Atlantic R. R,, 275. Whig Party, origin, X78; dissolu- tion, 247. Whiskey, prohibited in Colony, 61 ; prohibition removed, 64. U4 History of Georgia Whitefield, the Reverend George, 58, 67. Whitney, Eli, 212. Wilkes County, settled, 141. Wine, failure of efforts to pro- duce, 98. Wright, James, made royal gov- ernor, 86; leads royalist element in 1774, 107; arrested, 113; re- Savannah, 128; final surrender of, 123. Yazoo Land Fraud, disputes ovei western land, 152; sale by Geor- gia Legislature, 154; rescinding act, 158; cession by Georgia of western lands, 160; final settle- establishes royal government at ment, 162. m^. X 1 2 2 .^^ ^ .IB - ^ ■<<. L' •"OO A >' o5 Xj (1 -' -ar ■"h 0^' O- \^ y- .>- < ^'^^^ .s.- 0^ ^^^>/}?P^'\ -^^.^